<SPAN name="startofbook"></SPAN>
<div class='figcenter' style='padding-top: 1em; padding-bottom: 1em'>
<SPAN name='i001' id='i001'></SPAN>
<ANTIMG src='images/illus-cvr.jpg' alt='' title=''/><br/></div>
<p> <br/>
 <br/>
 <br/></p>
<div class='figcenter' style='padding-top: 1em; padding-bottom: 1em'>
<SPAN name='i002' id='i002'></SPAN>
<ANTIMG src="images/illus-fpc.jpg" alt="CARRINGTON LAUGHED JEERINGLY. (Page 268)" title=""/><br/>
<span class='caption'>CARRINGTON LAUGHED JEERINGLY. (Page 268)</span></div>
<p> <br/>
 <br/>
 <br/></p>
<div class='center'>
<p><span style='font-size:1.6em;font-weight:bold;'>THE</span></p>
<p><span style='font-size:1.6em;font-weight:bold;'>RANCHMAN</span></p>
<p> </p>
<p>BY</p>
<p><span style='font-size:larger;'>CHARLES ALDEN SELTZER</span></p>
<p> </p>
<p><span style='font-size:smaller;'>AUTHOR OF</span></p>
<p><span style='font-size:smaller;'>THE BOSS OF THE LAZY Y,</span></p>
<p><span style='font-size:smaller;'>FIREBRAND TREVISON,</span></p>
<p><span style='font-size:smaller;'>THE RANGE BOSS, ETC.</span></p>
<p> </p>
<p><span style='font-size:smaller;'>FRONTISPIECE BY</span></p>
<p>P. V. E. IVORY</p>
</div>
<div class='figcenter' style='padding-top: 1em; padding-bottom: 1em'>
<SPAN name='i003' id='i003'></SPAN>
<ANTIMG src='images/illus-emb.jpg' alt='' title=''/><br/></div>
<div class='center'>
<p><span style='font-size:smaller;'>NEW YORK</span></p>
<p>GROSSET & DUNLAP</p>
<p><span style='font-size:smaller;'>PUBLISHERS</span></p>
<p> </p>
<p><span style='font-size:smaller;'>Made in the United States of America</span></p>
</div>
<p> <br/>
 <br/>
 <br/></p>
<div class='center'>
<p><span style='font-size:smaller;'>Copyright</span></p>
<p><span style='font-size:smaller;'>A. C. McClurg & Co.</span></p>
<p><span style='font-size:smaller;'>1919</span></p>
<p> </p>
<p><span style='font-size:smaller;'>Published September, 1919</span></p>
<p> </p>
<p><span style='font-size:smaller;'><em>Copyrighted in Great Britain</em></span></p>
</div>
<p> <br/>
 <br/>
 <br/></p>
<div class='center'>
<p><span style='font-size:larger;'>CONTENTS</span></p>
</div>
<table class='c' summary='table of contents'>
<tr><td style='font-size:smaller'>CHAPTER</td><td></td><td style='font-size:smaller'>PAGE</td></tr>
<tr><td valign='top' style='text-align:right; padding-right:1em;'>I</td><td valign='top' style='text-align:left; padding-right:3em;'><span style='font-variant:small-caps'>Concerning Dawes</span></td><td valign='top' style='text-align:right;'><SPAN href='#chI'>1</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td valign='top' style='text-align:right; padding-right:1em;'>II</td><td valign='top' style='text-align:left; padding-right:3em;'><span style='font-variant:small-caps'>Slick Duds</span></td><td valign='top' style='text-align:right;'><SPAN href='#chII'>14</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td valign='top' style='text-align:right; padding-right:1em;'>III</td><td valign='top' style='text-align:left; padding-right:3em;'><span style='font-variant:small-caps'>The Serpent Trail</span></td><td valign='top' style='text-align:right;'><SPAN href='#chIII'>20</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td valign='top' style='text-align:right; padding-right:1em;'>IV</td><td valign='top' style='text-align:left; padding-right:3em;'><span style='font-variant:small-caps'>The Hold-Up</span></td><td valign='top' style='text-align:right;'><SPAN href='#chIV'>26</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td valign='top' style='text-align:right; padding-right:1em;'>V</td><td valign='top' style='text-align:left; padding-right:3em;'><span style='font-variant:small-caps'>The Unexpected</span></td><td valign='top' style='text-align:right;'><SPAN href='#chV'>36</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td valign='top' style='text-align:right; padding-right:1em;'>VI</td><td valign='top' style='text-align:left; padding-right:3em;'><span style='font-variant:small-caps'>A Man Makes Plans</span></td><td valign='top' style='text-align:right;'><SPAN href='#chVI'>51</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td valign='top' style='text-align:right; padding-right:1em;'>VII</td><td valign='top' style='text-align:left; padding-right:3em;'><span style='font-variant:small-caps'>The Shadow of the Past</span></td><td valign='top' style='text-align:right;'><SPAN href='#chVII'>59</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td valign='top' style='text-align:right; padding-right:1em;'>VIII</td><td valign='top' style='text-align:left; padding-right:3em;'><span style='font-variant:small-caps'>Concerning “Squint”</span></td><td valign='top' style='text-align:right;'><SPAN href='#chVIII'>66</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td valign='top' style='text-align:right; padding-right:1em;'>IX</td><td valign='top' style='text-align:left; padding-right:3em;'><span style='font-variant:small-caps'>A Man Lies</span></td><td valign='top' style='text-align:right;'><SPAN href='#chIX'>75</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td valign='top' style='text-align:right; padding-right:1em;'>X</td><td valign='top' style='text-align:left; padding-right:3em;'><span style='font-variant:small-caps'>The Frame-Up</span></td><td valign='top' style='text-align:right;'><SPAN href='#chX'>86</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td valign='top' style='text-align:right; padding-right:1em;'>XI</td><td valign='top' style='text-align:left; padding-right:3em;'><span style='font-variant:small-caps'>“No Fun Fooling Her”</span></td><td valign='top' style='text-align:right;'><SPAN href='#chXI'>91</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td valign='top' style='text-align:right; padding-right:1em;'>XII</td><td valign='top' style='text-align:left; padding-right:3em;'><span style='font-variant:small-caps'>Lifting the Mask</span></td><td valign='top' style='text-align:right;'><SPAN href='#chXII'>106</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td valign='top' style='text-align:right; padding-right:1em;'>XIII</td><td valign='top' style='text-align:left; padding-right:3em;'><span style='font-variant:small-caps'>The Shadow of Trouble</span></td><td valign='top' style='text-align:right;'><SPAN href='#chXIII'>113</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td valign='top' style='text-align:right; padding-right:1em;'>XIV</td><td valign='top' style='text-align:left; padding-right:3em;'><span style='font-variant:small-caps'>The Face of a Fighter</span></td><td valign='top' style='text-align:right;'><SPAN href='#chXIV'>128</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td valign='top' style='text-align:right; padding-right:1em;'>XV</td><td valign='top' style='text-align:left; padding-right:3em;'><span style='font-variant:small-caps'>Gloom—and Plans</span></td><td valign='top' style='text-align:right;'><SPAN href='#chXV'>142</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td valign='top' style='text-align:right; padding-right:1em;'>XVI</td><td valign='top' style='text-align:left; padding-right:3em;'><span style='font-variant:small-caps'>A Man Becomes a Brute</span></td><td valign='top' style='text-align:right;'><SPAN href='#chXVI'>153</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td valign='top' style='text-align:right; padding-right:1em;'>XVII</td><td valign='top' style='text-align:left; padding-right:3em;'><span style='font-variant:small-caps'>The Wrong Ankle</span></td><td valign='top' style='text-align:right;'><SPAN href='#chXVII'>172</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td valign='top' style='text-align:right; padding-right:1em;'>XVIII</td><td valign='top' style='text-align:left; padding-right:3em;'><span style='font-variant:small-caps'>The Beast Again</span></td><td valign='top' style='text-align:right;'><SPAN href='#chXVIII'>186</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td valign='top' style='text-align:right; padding-right:1em;'>XIX</td><td valign='top' style='text-align:left; padding-right:3em;'><span style='font-variant:small-caps'>The Ambush</span></td><td valign='top' style='text-align:right;'><SPAN href='#chXIX'>193</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td valign='top' style='text-align:right; padding-right:1em;'>XX</td><td valign='top' style='text-align:left; padding-right:3em;'><span style='font-variant:small-caps'>A Fight to a Finish</span></td><td valign='top' style='text-align:right;'><SPAN href='#chXX'>200</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td valign='top' style='text-align:right; padding-right:1em;'>XXI</td><td valign='top' style='text-align:left; padding-right:3em;'><span style='font-variant:small-caps'>A Man Faces Death</span></td><td valign='top' style='text-align:right;'><SPAN href='#chXXI'>212</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td valign='top' style='text-align:right; padding-right:1em;'>XXII</td><td valign='top' style='text-align:left; padding-right:3em;'><span style='font-variant:small-caps'>Looking for Trouble</span></td><td valign='top' style='text-align:right;'><SPAN href='#chXXII'>218</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td valign='top' style='text-align:right; padding-right:1em;'>XXIII</td><td valign='top' style='text-align:left; padding-right:3em;'><span style='font-variant:small-caps'>A World-Old Longing</span></td><td valign='top' style='text-align:right;'><SPAN href='#chXXIII'>225</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td valign='top' style='text-align:right; padding-right:1em;'>XXIV</td><td valign='top' style='text-align:left; padding-right:3em;'><span style='font-variant:small-caps'>A Death Warrant</span></td><td valign='top' style='text-align:right;'><SPAN href='#chXXIV'>232</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td valign='top' style='text-align:right; padding-right:1em;'>XXV</td><td valign='top' style='text-align:left; padding-right:3em;'><span style='font-variant:small-caps'>Keats Looks for “Squint”</span></td><td valign='top' style='text-align:right;'><SPAN href='#chXXV'>238</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td valign='top' style='text-align:right; padding-right:1em;'>XXVI</td><td valign='top' style='text-align:left; padding-right:3em;'><span style='font-variant:small-caps'>Keats Finds “Squint”</span></td><td valign='top' style='text-align:right;'><SPAN href='#chXXVI'>245</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td valign='top' style='text-align:right; padding-right:1em;'>XXVII</td><td valign='top' style='text-align:left; padding-right:3em;'><span style='font-variant:small-caps'>Besieged</span></td><td valign='top' style='text-align:right;'><SPAN href='#chXXVII'>254</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td valign='top' style='text-align:right; padding-right:1em;'>XXXIII</td><td valign='top' style='text-align:left; padding-right:3em;'><span style='font-variant:small-caps'>The Fugitive</span></td><td valign='top' style='text-align:right;'><SPAN href='#chXXXIII'>259</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td valign='top' style='text-align:right; padding-right:1em;'>XXIX</td><td valign='top' style='text-align:left; padding-right:3em;'><span style='font-variant:small-caps'>The Captive</span></td><td valign='top' style='text-align:right;'><SPAN href='#chXXIX'>264</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td valign='top' style='text-align:right; padding-right:1em;'>XXX</td><td valign='top' style='text-align:left; padding-right:3em;'><span style='font-variant:small-caps'>Parsons Has Human Instincts</span></td><td valign='top' style='text-align:right;'><SPAN href='#chXXX'>270</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td valign='top' style='text-align:right; padding-right:1em;'>XXXI</td><td valign='top' style='text-align:left; padding-right:3em;'><span style='font-variant:small-caps'>A Rescue</span></td><td valign='top' style='text-align:right;'><SPAN href='#chXXXI'>277</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td valign='top' style='text-align:right; padding-right:1em;'>XXXII</td><td valign='top' style='text-align:left; padding-right:3em;'><span style='font-variant:small-caps'>Taylor Becomes Riled</span></td><td valign='top' style='text-align:right;'><SPAN href='#chXXXII'>284</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td valign='top' style='text-align:right; padding-right:1em;'>XXXIII</td><td valign='top' style='text-align:left; padding-right:3em;'><span style='font-variant:small-caps'>Retribution</span></td><td valign='top' style='text-align:right;'><SPAN href='#chXXXIII'>290</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td valign='top' style='text-align:right; padding-right:1em;'>XXXIV</td><td valign='top' style='text-align:left; padding-right:3em;'><span style='font-variant:small-caps'>The Will of the Mob</span></td><td valign='top' style='text-align:right;'><SPAN href='#chXXXIV'>304</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td valign='top' style='text-align:right; padding-right:1em;'>XXXV</td><td valign='top' style='text-align:left; padding-right:3em;'><span style='font-variant:small-caps'>Triumph at Last</span></td><td valign='top' style='text-align:right;'><SPAN href='#chXXXV'>315</SPAN></td></tr>
</table>
<p> <br/>
 <br/>
 <br/></p>
<h1>THE RANCHMAN</h1>
<h2><span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_1'></SPAN>1</span><SPAN name='chI' id='chI'></SPAN>CHAPTER I—CONCERNING DAWES</h2>
<p>The air in the Pullman was hot and, despite the
mechanical contrivances built into the coach to
prevent such a contingency, the dust from the right-of-way
persisted in filtering through crevices.</p>
<p>Even the electric fans futilely combated the heat; their
droning hum bespoke terrific revolutions which did not
materially lessen the discomfort of the occupants of the
coach; and the dry, dead dust of the desert, the glare of
a white-hot sun, the continuing panorama of waste land,
rolling past the car windows, afforded not one cool vista
to assuage the torture of travel.</p>
<p>For hours after leaving Kansas City, several of the
passengers had diligently gazed out of the windows. But
when they had passed the vast grass plains and had
entered the desert, where their eyes met nothing but
endless stretches of feathery alkali dust, beds of dead
lava, and clumps of cacti with thorny spire and spatula
blade defiantly upthrust as though in mockery of all
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_2'></SPAN>2</span>
life—the passengers drew the shades and settled down
in their seats to endure the discomfort of it all.</p>
<p>A <em>blasé</em> tourist forward reclined in one seat and rested
his legs on another. From under the peak of a cap pulled
well down over his eyes he smiled cynically at his fellow-passengers,
noting the various manifestations of their
discomfort. The tourist was a transcontinental traveler
of note and he had few expectations. It amused him to
watch those who had.</p>
<p>A girl of about twenty, seated midway in the coach
to the left of the tourist, had been an intent watcher of
the desert. With the covert eye of the tourist upon her
she stiffened, stared sharply out of the window, then
drew back, shuddering, a queer pallor on her face.</p>
<p>“She’s seen something unpleasant,” mused the tourist.
“A heap of bleached bones—which would be the
skeleton of a steer; or a rattlesnake—or most anything.
She’s got nerves.”</p>
<p><em>One</em> passenger in the car had no nerves—of that the
tourist was convinced. The tourist had observed him
closely, and the tourist was a judge of men. The nerveless
one was a young man who sat in a rear seat staring
intently out into the inferno of heat and sand, apparently
absorbed in his thoughts and unaware of any physical
discomfort.</p>
<p>“Young—about twenty-seven or twenty-eight—maybe
thirty,” mused the tourist; “but an old-timer in
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_3'></SPAN>3</span>
this country. I wised up to him when he got aboard at
Kansas City. Been a miner in his time—or a cow-puncher.
I’d hate to cross him.”</p>
<p>Among the other passengers were two who attracted
the attention of the tourist. They occupied the seat in
front of the young man.</p>
<p>One of the two, who sat nearest the window, was not
much older than the young man occupying the seat behind
him. The tourist guessed his age to be around
thirty-five or thirty-six. He was big, almost massive,
and had lived well—as the slightly corpulent stomach
revealed. Despite that, however, he was in good physical
condition, for his cheeks glowed with good healthy color
under the blue-black sheen of his fresh-shaved beard;
there was a snapping twinkle in his black eyes, which
were penetrating and steady; and there was a quiet confidence
in his manner which told that he knew and appreciated
himself. He was handsome in a heavy, sensuous
fashion, and his coal-black hair, close-cropped and wavy,
gave him an appearance of virility and importance that
demanded a second look. The man seated beside him was
undersized and ordinary-looking, with straight, iron-gray
hair and a look of having taken orders all his life.
The tourist set his age at fifty-five.</p>
<p>The girl was of the type that the tourist admired. He
had seen her kind in the far corners of the world, on the
thronged streets of cosmopolitan cities, in isolated
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_4'></SPAN>4</span>
sections of the world—the self-reliant, quietly confident
American girl whose straight-in-the-eye glance always
made a man feel impelled to respectfully remove his
hat.</p>
<p>She was not beautiful, but she was undeniably good-looking.
She was almost tall, and the ease and grace
of her movements sufficed to convey to the tourist some
conception of the symmetrical lines of her figure. If her
features had been more regular, the girl would have
been plain; but there was a slight uptilt to her nose that
hinted of piquancy, denied by the quiet, steady eyes.</p>
<p>A brown mass of hair, which she had twisted into
bulging coils and glistening waves, made the tourist wonder
over her taste in that feminine art.</p>
<p>“She knows what becomes her,” he decided.</p>
<p>He knew the two men seated in front of the young
man were traveling with her, for he had seen them together,
with the older man patting her shoulder affectionately.
But often she left them with their talk, which
did not seem to interest her, while she withdrew to a
distant seat to read or to gaze out of the window.</p>
<p>She had not seemed to notice either the man of colorless
personality or the young man who occupied the seat
behind her friends. If she had glanced at them at all
it was with that impersonal interest one feels in the
average traveler one meets anywhere.</p>
<p>But long ago—which, to be strictly accurate, was when
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_5'></SPAN>5</span>
he had entered the coach at Kansas City—Quinton Taylor
had been interested in her. He was content, though,
to conceal that interest, and not once when she chanced
to look toward him did she catch him looking at her.</p>
<p>Taylor knew he was no man to excite the interest of
women, not even when he looked his best. And he knew
that in his present raiment he did not look his best. He
was highly uncomfortable.</p>
<p>For one thing, the white, starched collar he wore irritated
him, choked him, reddening his face and bulging
his eyes. The starched shirt had a pernicious habit of
tightly sticking to him, the seams chafing his skin.</p>
<p>The ready-made suit he had bought at Kansas City
was too small, and he could feel his shoulders bulging
through the arms of the coat, while the trousers—at the
hips and the knees—were stretched until he feared the
cloth would not stand the strain.</p>
<p>The shoes were tight, and the derby hat—he glowered
humorously at it in the rack above his head and gazed
longingly at the suitcase at his feet, into which he had
crammed the clothing he had discarded and which he
had replaced at the suggestion of his banker in Kansas
City. Cowboy rigging was not uncommon to Kansas
City, the banker had told him, but still—well, if a man
was wealthy, and wished to make an impression, it might
be wise to make the change.</p>
<p>Not in years had Taylor worn civilized clothing, and
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_6'></SPAN>6</span>
he was fully determined that before reaching his home
town he would resume the clothing to which he was
accustomed—and throw the new duds out of a window.
He reddened over an imaginary picture of himself descending
from the train in his newly acquired rigging to
endure the humorous comments of his friends. Old Ben
Mullarky, for instance, would think he had gone loco—and
would tell him so. Yes, the new clothes were
doomed; some ragged overland specimen of the genus
“hobo” would probably find them or, if not, they would
clutter up the right-of-way as the sad memento of a
mistake he had made during a fit of momentary weakness.</p>
<p>As a matter of fact the girl had noticed Taylor. A
girl will notice men, unconsciously. Sitting at her window
even now, she was thinking of him.</p>
<p>She was not aware that she had studied him, or that
she had even glanced at him. But despite her lack of
interest in him she had a picture of him in mind, and
her thoughts dwelt upon him.</p>
<p>She, too, had been aware that Taylor’s clothes did
not fit him. She had noticed the bulging shoulders, the
tight trousers, the shoes, squeaking with newness, when
once he had passed through the car to go out upon the
platform. She had noticed him screwing his neck around
in the collar; she had seen him hunch his shoulders intolerantly;
she had seen that the trousers were too short;
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_7'></SPAN>7</span>
that he looked like an awkward farmer or homesteader
abroad on a pleasure trip, and decidedly uncomfortable in
the unaccustomed attire.</p>
<p>She had giggled to herself, then. For Taylor did
make a ridiculous figure. But later—when he had reentered
the car and she had looked fairly, though swiftly,
at him as he advanced down the aisle—she had seen
something about him that had impressed her. And that
was what she was thinking about now. It was his face,
she believed. It was red with self-consciousness and
embarrassment, but she had seen and noted the strength
of it—the lean, muscular jaw, the square, projecting
chin, the firm, well-controlled mouth; the steady, steel-blue
eyes, the broad forehead. It had seemed to her that
he was humorously aware of the clothes, but that he was
grimly determined to brazen the thing out.</p>
<p>Her mental picture now gave her the entire view of
Taylor as he had come toward her. And she could see
him in a different environment, in cowboy regalia, on a
horse, perfectly at ease. He made a heroic figure. So
real was the picture that she caught herself saying:
“Clothes <em>do</em> make the man!” And then she smiled at
her enthusiasm and looked out of the window.</p>
<p>Taylor had been thinking of her with the natural
curiosity of the man who knows he has no chance and
is not looking for one. But she had impressed him as
resembling someone with whom he had been well acquainted.
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_8'></SPAN>8</span>
For an hour he puzzled his brain in an
endeavor to associate hers with some face of his recollection,
but elusive memory resisted his demands on it
with the result that he gave it up and leaned back as
restfully as he could with the consciousness of the physical
torture he was undergoing.</p>
<p>And then he heard the younger of the two men in
front of him speak to the other:</p>
<p>“We’ll make things hum in Dawes, once we get hold
of the reins.”</p>
<p>“But there will be obstacles, Carrington.”</p>
<p>“Sure! Obstacles! Of course. That will make the
thing all the more enjoyable.”</p>
<p>There was a ring in Carrington’s voice that struck a
chord of sudden antagonism in Taylor, a note of cunning
that acted upon Taylor instantly, as though the man
had twanged discord somewhere in his nature.</p>
<p>Dawes was Taylor’s home; he had extensive and varied
interests there; he had been largely responsible for
Dawes’s growth and development; he had fought for
the town and the interests of the town’s citizens against
the aggressions of the railroad company and a grasping
land company that had succeeded in clouding the titles
to every foot of land owned by Dawes’s citizens—his
own included.</p>
<p>And he had heard rumors of outside interests that
were trying to gain a foothold in Dawes. He had paid
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_9'></SPAN>9</span>
little attention to these rumors, for he knew that capital
was always trying to drive wedges that would admit it to
the golden opportunities afforded by new towns, and
he had ascribed the rumors to idle gossip, being aware
that such things are talked of by irresponsibles.</p>
<p>But the words, “Get hold of the reins,” had a sound
of craft and plotting. And there was something in Carrington’s
manner and appearance that suggested guile
and smooth cunning. Seething with interest, Taylor
closed his eyes and leaned his head back upon the cushion
behind him, simulating sleep.</p>
<p>He felt Carrington turn; he could feel the man’s eyes
on him, and he knew that Carrington was speculating
over him.</p>
<p>He heard the other man whisper, though he could not
catch the words. However, he heard Carrington’s
answer:</p>
<p>“Don’t be uneasy—I’m not ‘spilling’ anything. <em>He</em>
wouldn’t know the difference if I did. A homesteader
hitting town for the first time in a year, probably. Did
you notice him? Lord, what an outfit!”</p>
<p>He laughed discordantly, resuming in a whisper which
carried to Taylor:</p>
<p>“As I was saying, we’ll make things hum. The good
folks in Dawes don’t know it, but we’ve been framing
them for quite a spell—been feeding them Danforth.
You don’t know Danforth, eh? He’s quite a hit with
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_10'></SPAN>10</span>
these rubes. Knows how to smear the soft stuff over
them. He’s what we call a ‘mixer’ back in Chicago.
Been in Dawes for about a year, working in the dark.
Been going strong during the past few months. Running
for mayor now—election is today. It’ll be over by the
time we get there. He’ll win, of course; he wired me it
was a cinch. Cost a lot, though, but it’s worth it. We’ll
own Dawes before we get through!”</p>
<p>It was with an effort that Taylor kept his eyes closed.
He heard nothing further, for the man’s voice had
dropped lower and Taylor could not hear it above the
roar of the train.</p>
<p>Still, he had heard enough to convince him that Carrington
had designs on the future welfare of Dawes,
and his muscles swelled until the tight-fitting coat was
in dire danger of bursting.</p>
<p>Danforth he knew slightly. He had always disliked
and distrusted the man. He remembered Danforth’s public
<em>début</em> to the people of Dawes. It had been on the
occasion of Dawes’s first anniversary and some public-spirited
citizens had decided upon a celebration. They
had selected Danforth as the speaker of the day because
of his eloquence—for Danforth had seized every opportunity
to publicly air his vigorous voice, and Taylor had
been compelled to acknowledge that Danforth was a
forceful and able speaker.</p>
<p>Thereafter, Danforth’s voice often found the public
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_11'></SPAN>11</span>
ear. He was a lawyer, and the sign he had erected over
the front of the frame building adjoining the courthouse
was as magnificent as Danforth was eloquent.</p>
<p>But though Taylor had distrusted Danforth, he had
found no evidence—until now—that the lawyer intended
to betray his fellow-citizens. Before leaving
Dawes the week before he had heard some talk, linking
Danforth’s name with politics, but he had discredited the
talk. His own selection had been Neil Norton, and he had
asked his friends to consider Norton.</p>
<p>Taylor listened intently, with the hope of hearing more
of the conversation being carried on between the two
men in front of him. But he heard no more on the subject
broached by Carrington. Later, however, his eyes
still closed, still pretending to be asleep, he saw through
veiled eyelids the girl rise from her seat and come toward
the two men in front of him.</p>
<p>For the first time he got a clear, full view of her face
and a deep, disturbing emotion thrilled him. For now,
looking fairly at her, he was more than ever convinced
that he had seen her before, or that her resemblance to
someone he had known was more startling than he had
thought.</p>
<p>Then he heard Carrington speak to her.</p>
<p>“Getting tired, Miss Harlan?” said Carrington.
“Well, it will soon be ended, now. One more night on
the train—and then Dawes.”
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_12'></SPAN>12</span></p>
<p>The older man laughed, and touched the girl’s arm
playfully. “You don’t mind it, do you, Marion?”</p>
<p>The older man said more, but Taylor did not hear him.
For at his mention of the girl’s given name, so soon after
Carrington’s pronouncement of “Harlan,” Taylor’s eyes
popped open, and he sat erect, staring straight at the girl.</p>
<p>Whether her gaze had been drawn by his, or whether
her woman’s curiosity had moved her to look at him,
Taylor never knew. But she met his wide gaze fairly,
and returned his stare with one equally wide. Only, he
was certain, there was a glint of mocking accusation in
her eyes—to remind him, he supposed, that she had
caught him eavesdropping.</p>
<p>And then she smiled, looking at Carrington.</p>
<p>“One is recompensed for the inconveniences of travel
by the interesting characters one chances to meet.”</p>
<p>And she found opportunity, with Carrington looking
full at her, to throw a swift, significant glance at Taylor.</p>
<p>Taylor flushed scarlet. Not, however, because of any
embarrassment he felt over her words, but because at
that instant was borne overwhelmingly upon him the
knowledge that the girl, and the man, Carrington, who
accompanied her—even the older man—were persons
with whom Fate had insisted that he play—or fight.
They were to choose. And that they had chosen to fight
was apparent by the girl’s glance, and by Carrington’s
words, “We’ll own Dawes before we get through.”
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_13'></SPAN>13</span></p>
<p>Taylor got up and went to the smoking-room, where
he sat for a long time, staring out of the window, his
eyes on the vast sea of sagebrush that stretched before
him, his mental vision fixed on an earlier day and upon
a tragedy that was linked with the three persons in the
coach—who seemed desirous of antagonizing him.</p>
<h2><span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_14'></SPAN>14</span><SPAN name='chII' id='chII'></SPAN>CHAPTER II—SLICK DUDS</h2>
<p>After a time Taylor’s lips wreathed into a smile.
He searched in his pockets—he had transferred
all his effects from the clothing in the suitcase to his
present uncomfortable raiment—and produced a long,
faded envelope in danger of imminent disintegration.</p>
<p>The smile faded from his lips as he drew out the contents
of the envelope, and a certain grim pity filled his
eyes. He read:</p>
<p style='margin-left: 2em;margin-right: 2em;'>
<span class='sc'>Squint</span>:</p>
<p style='margin-left: 2em;margin-right: 2em;'>
That rock falling on me has fixed me. There is no use in
me trying to fool myself. I’m going out. There’s things a
man can’t say, even to a friend like you. So I’m writing this.
You won’t read it until after I’m gone, and then you can’t tell
me what you think of me for shoving this responsibility on
you. But you’ll accept, I know; you’ll do it for me, won’t
you?</p>
<p style='margin-left: 2em;margin-right: 2em;'>
I’ve had a lot of trouble—family trouble. It wouldn’t
interest you. But it made me come West. Maybe I shouldn’t
have come. I don’t know; but it seemed best.</p>
<p style='margin-left: 2em;margin-right: 2em;'>
You’ve been a mighty persevering friend, and I know you
from the ground up. You never inquired about my past, but
I know you’ve wondered. Once I mentioned my daughter,
and I saw you look sharp at me. Yes, there is a daughter.
Her name is Marion. There was a wife and her brother,
Elam Parsons. But only Marion counts. The others were
too selfish and sneaking.
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_15'></SPAN>15</span></p>
<p style='margin-left: 2em;margin-right: 2em;'>
You won’t be interested in that. But I want Marion
taken care of. She was fifteen when I saw her last. She
looked just like me; thank God for that! She won’t have any
of the characteristics of the others!</p>
<p style='margin-left: 2em;margin-right: 2em;'>
Squint, I want you to take care of her. You’ll find her in
Westwood, Illinois. You and me have talked of selling the
mine. Sell it; take my share and for it give Marion a half-interest
in your ranch, the Arrow. If there is any left, put it
in land in Dawes—that town is going to boom. Guard it for
her, and marry her, Squint; she’ll make you a good wife.
Tell her I want her to marry you; she’ll do it, for she always
liked her “dad.”</p>
<p>There was more, but Taylor read no further. He
stuffed the envelope into a pocket and sat looking out of
the window, regarding morosely the featureless landscape.
After a time he grinned saturninely:</p>
<p>“Looks to me like a long chance, Larry,” he mused.
“Considered as a marrying proposition she don’t seem
to be enthusiastic over me. Now what in thunder is she
doing out here, and why is that man Carrington with
her—and where did she pick him up?”</p>
<p>There came no answer to these questions.</p>
<p>Reluctant, after the girl’s mocking smile, to seem to
intrude, Taylor sat in the smoking-compartment during
the long afternoon, until the dusk began to descend—until
through the curtains of the compartment he caught
a glimpse of the girl and her companions returning from
the dining-car. Then, after what he considered a decent
interval, he emerged from the compartment, went to
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_16'></SPAN>16</span>
the diner, ate heartily, and returned to the smoking-room.</p>
<p>He had met Larry Harlan about three years before.
Harlan had appeared at the Arrow one morning, looking
for a job. Taylor had hired him, not because he needed
men, but because he thought Harlan needed work. A
friendship had developed, and when one day Harlan had
told Taylor about a mine he had discovered in the Sangre
de Christo Mountains, some miles southwestward, offering
Taylor a half-interest if the latter would help him
get at the gold, Taylor had agreed.</p>
<p>They had found the mine, worked it, and had taken
considerable gold out of it, when one day a huge rock
had fallen on Harlan. Taylor had done what he could,
rigging up a drag with which to take Harlan to town and
a doctor, but Harlan had died before town could be
reached.</p>
<p>That had been the extent of Taylor’s friendship for
the man. But he had followed Harlan’s directions.</p>
<p>Sitting in the smoking-compartment, he again drew out
Harlan’s note to him and read further:</p>
<p style='margin-left: 2em;margin-right: 2em;'>
Marion will have considerable money, and I don’t want
no sneak to get hold of it—like the sneak that got hold of
the money my wife had, that I saved. There’s a lot of them
around. If Marion is going to fall in love with one of that
kind, I’d rather she wouldn’t get what I leave—the man
would get it away from her.</p>
<p style='margin-left: 2em;margin-right: 2em;'>
Use your own judgment, and I’ll be satisfied.</p>
<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_17'></SPAN>17</span></div>
<p>It was not difficult for Taylor to divine what had happened
to Harlan, nor was it difficult to understand that
the man’s distrust of other men amounted to an obsession.
However, Taylor had no choice but to assume the
trust and no course but to obey Harlan’s wishes in the
matter.</p>
<p>Taylor’s trip eastward to Kansas City had been for the
purpose of attending to his own financial interests, and
incidentally to conclude the deal for the sale of the mine.
He had deposited the money in his own name, but he
intended—or had intended—after returning to the
Arrow to make arrangements for his absence, to go to
Westwood to find Marion Harlan. The presence of the
girl on the train and the certain conviction that she was
bound for Dawes made the trip to Westwood unnecessary.</p>
<p>For Taylor had no doubt that the girl was the daughter
of Larry Harlan. That troublesome resemblance of hers
to someone of his acquaintance bothered him no longer,
for the girl was the living image of Larry Harlan.</p>
<p>Taylor had not anticipated the coming of Carrington
into his scheme of things. For the first time since Larry
Harlan’s letter had come into his possession he realized
that deep in his heart was a fugitive desire for the coming
of the girl to the Arrow. He had liked Larry Harlan,
and he had drawn mental pictures of what the daughter
would be like; and, though she was not exactly as he had
pictured her, she was near enough to the ideal he had
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_18'></SPAN>18</span>
visualized. He wanted, now more than ever, to faithfully
fulfil his obligation to Larry Harlan.</p>
<p>The presence of Carrington on the train, coupled with
the inference that Carrington was a close friend of the
girl’s, irritated Taylor. For at the first glance he had
felt a subtle antagonism for the man. Yet he was more
disturbed over the mockery in the girl’s eyes when she
had looked directly at him when she had caught him
listening to her talk with Carrington and the older man.</p>
<p>Still, Taylor was not the type of man who permits the
imminence of discord to disturb his mental equanimity,
and he grinned into the growing darkness of the plains
with a grimly humorous twist to his lips that promised
interesting developments should Carrington oppose him.</p>
<p>When he again looked out of the aperture in the curtains
screening the smoking-compartment from the aisle
he saw the porter pass, carrying bedclothing. Later he
saw the porter returning, smilingly inspecting a bill.
After an interval the porter stuck his head through the
curtains and surveyed him with a flashing grin:</p>
<p>“Is you ready to retiah, boss?” he asked.</p>
<p>A quarter of an hour later Taylor was alone in his berth,
gazing at his reflection in the glass while he undressed.</p>
<p>“You wouldn’t have the nerve to think she is interested
in you, would you—you homely son-of-a-gun?”
he queried of his reflection. “Why, no, she ain’t, of
course,” he added; “no woman could be interested in
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_19'></SPAN>19</span>
you. You’ve been all day looking like a half-baked dude—and
no woman is interested in dudes!”</p>
<p>Carefully removing the contents of the several pockets
of the despised wearing apparel in which he had suffered
for many days, he got into his nightclothes and rang
for the porter. When the latter appeared with his huge
grin, Taylor gave him the offensive clothing, bundled
together to form a large ball.</p>
<p>“George,” he said seriously, almost solemnly, “I’m
tired of being a dude. Some day I may decide to be a
dude; but not now. Take these duds and save them
until I ask for them. If you offer them to me before I
ask for them, I’ll perforate you sure as hell!”</p>
<p>He produced a big Colt pistol from somewhere, and
as the weapon glinted in the light the porter’s eyes bulged
and he backed away, gingerly holding the bundle of
clothing.</p>
<p>“Yassir, boss—yassir! I shuah won’t mention it till
you does, boss!”</p>
<p>When the porter had gone, Taylor grinned into the
glass.</p>
<p>“I sure have felt just what I looked,” he said.</p>
<p>Then he got into his berth and dreamed all night of a
girl whose mocking eyes seemed to say:</p>
<p>“Well, do you think you have profited by listening?”</p>
<p>“Why, sure,” he retorted, in his dreams; “I’ve seen
you, ain’t I?”</p>
<h2><span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_20'></SPAN>20</span><SPAN name='chIII' id='chIII'></SPAN>CHAPTER III—THE SERPENT TRAIL</h2>
<p>Marion Harlan did not dream of Quinton
Taylor, though her last waking thought was of
him, and when she opened her eyes in the morning it was
to see him as he had sat in the seat behind Carrington and
her uncle, his eyes wide with interest, or astonishment—or
some emotion that she could not define—looking
directly at her.</p>
<p>She had been certain then, and still was certain that
he had been feigning sleep, that he had been listening to
the talk carried on between her uncle and Carrington.</p>
<p>Why had he listened?</p>
<p>That interrogation absorbed her thoughts as she
dressed.</p>
<p>She had not meant to be interested in him, for she had,
in her first glance at him, mentally decided that he was
no more interesting than many another ill-dressed and
uncouth westerner whom she had seen on the journey
toward Dawes.</p>
<p>To be sure, she had seen signs of strength in him,
mental and physical, but that had been when she looked at
him coming toward her down the aisle. But even then
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_21'></SPAN>21</span>
he had not interested her; her interest began when she
noted his interest in the conversation of her traveling
companions. And then she had noticed several things
about him that had escaped her in other glances at him.</p>
<p>For one thing, despite the astonishment in his eyes,
she had observed the cold keenness of them, the odd squint
at the corners, where little wrinkles, splaying outward,
indicated either deliberate impudence or concealed mirth.
She was rather inclined to believe it the latter, though she
would not have been surprised to discover the wrinkles
to mean the former.</p>
<p>And then she had noted his mouth; his lips had been
straight and firm; she had been sure they were set resolutely
when she had surprised him looking at her. That
had seemed to indicate that he had taken more than a
passing interest in what he had overheard.</p>
<p>She speculated long over the incident, finally deciding
that much would depend upon what he had overheard.
There was only one way to determine that, and at breakfast
in the dining-car she interrogated Carrington.</p>
<p>“Of course, you and uncle are going to Dawes on business,
and I am merely tagging along to see if I can find
any trace of my father. But have you any business
secrets that might interest an eavesdropper? On a train,
for instance—a train going toward Dawes?”</p>
<p>“What do you mean?” Carrington’s eyes flashed as
he leaned toward her.
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_22'></SPAN>22</span></p>
<p>“Have you and uncle talked business within hearing
distance of a stranger?”</p>
<p>Carrington’s face flushed; he exchanged a swift glance
with the other man.</p>
<p>“You mean that clodhopper with the tight-fitting hand-me-down
in the seat behind us—yesterday? He was
asleep!”</p>
<p>“Then you did talk business—business secrets,” smiled
the girl. “I thought really big men commonly concealed
their business secrets from the eager ears of outsiders.”</p>
<p>She laughed aloud at Carrington’s scowl, and then
went on:</p>
<p>“I don’t think the clodhopper was asleep. In fact, I
rather think he was very wide awake. I wouldn’t say
for certain, but I <em>think</em> he was awake. You see, when
I came back to talk with you he was sitting very straight,
and his eyes were wide open.</p>
<p>“And I shall tell you something else,” she went on.
“During all the time he sat behind you, when you were
talking, I watched him, he was pretending to sleep, for
at times he opened his eyes and looked at you, and I am
sure he was not thinking pleasant thoughts. And I don’t
believe he is a clodhopper. I think he amounts to something;
and if you will look well at him you will see, too.
When he was listening to you there was a look in his eyes
that made me think of fighting.” And then, after a
momentary pause, she added slowly, “there isn’t anything
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_23'></SPAN>23</span>
wrong about the business you are going to transact out
here—is there?”</p>
<p>“Wrong?” he laughed. “Oh, no! Business is business.”
He leaned forward and gazed deliberately into
her eyes, his own glowing significantly. “You don’t
think, with me holding your good opinion—and always
hoping to better it—that I would do anything to destroy
it, Marion?”</p>
<p>The girl’s cheeks were suffused with faint color.</p>
<p>“You are assuming again, Mr. James J. Carrington.
I don’t care for your subtle speeches. I like you best when
you talk frankly; but I am not sure that I shall ever like
you enough to marry you.”</p>
<p>She smiled at the scowl in his eyes, then looked speculatively
at him. It should have been apparent to him
that she had spoken the truth regarding her feeling for
him.</p>
<p>The uncle knew she had spoken the truth, for she left
them presently, and the car door had hardly closed behind
her when Carrington said, smiling grimly:</p>
<p>“She’s a thoroughbred, Parsons. That’s why I like
her. I’ll have her, too!”</p>
<p>“Careful,” grinned the other, smoothly. “If she ever
discovers what a brute you are—” He made a gesture
of finality.</p>
<p>“Brute! Bah! Parsons, you make me sick! I’ll take
her when I want her! Why do you suppose I told her that
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_24'></SPAN>24</span>
fairy tale about her father having been seen in this locality?
To get her out here with me, of course—where
there isn’t a hell of a lot of law, and a man’s will is the
only thing that governs him. She won’t have me, eh?
Well, we’ll see!”</p>
<p>Parsons smirked at the other. “Then you lied about
Lawrence Harlan having been seen in this country?”</p>
<p>“Sure,” admitted Carrington. “Why not?”</p>
<p>Parsons looked leeringly at Carrington. “Suppose I
should tell her?”</p>
<p>Carrington glared at the older man. “You won’t,” he
declared. “In the first place, you don’t love her as an
uncle should because she looks like Larry Harlan—and
you hated Larry. Suppose I should tell her that you were
the cause of the trouble between her parents; that you
framed up on her mother, to get her to leave Larry?
Why, you damned, two-faced gopher, she’d wither you!”</p>
<p>He grinned at the other and got up, turning, when he
reached his feet, to see Quinton Taylor, standing beside
a chair at the next table, just ready to sit down, but
delaying to hear the remainder of the extraordinary conversation
carried on between the two men.</p>
<p>Taylor had donned the garments he had discarded in
Kansas City. A blue woolen shirt, open at the throat;
corduroy trousers, the bottoms stuffed into the soft tops
of high-heeled boots; a well-filled cartridge-belt, sagging
at the right hip with the weight of a heavy pistol—and
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_25'></SPAN>25</span>
a broad-brimmed felt hat, which a smiling waiter
held for him—completed his attire.</p>
<p>Freshly shaved, his face glowed with the color that
betokens perfect health; and just now his eyes were also
glowing—but with frank disgust and dislike.</p>
<p>Carrington flushed darkly and stepped close to Taylor.
Carrington’s chin was thrust out belligerently; his eyes
fairly danced with a rage that he could hardly restrain.</p>
<p>“Listening again, eh?” he said hoarsely. “You had
your ears trained on us yesterday, in the Pullman, and
now you are at it again. I’ve a notion to knock your
damned head off!”</p>
<p>Taylor’s eyelids flickered once, the little wrinkles at the
corners of his eyes deepening a trifle. But his gaze was
steady, and the blue of his eyes grew a trifle more steely.</p>
<p>“You’ve got a bigger notion not to, Mr. Man,” he
grinned. “You run a whole lot to talk.”</p>
<p>He sat down, twisted around in the chair and faced
the table, casting a humorous eye at the black waiter,
and ignoring Carrington.</p>
<p>“I’ll want a passable breakfast this morning, George,”
he said; “I’m powerful hungry.”</p>
<p>He did not turn when Carrington went out, followed
by Parsons.</p>
<p>The waiter hovered near him, grinning widely.</p>
<p>“I reckon you-all ain’t none scary, boss!” he said,
admiringly.</p>
<h2><span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_26'></SPAN>26</span><SPAN name='chIV' id='chIV'></SPAN>CHAPTER IV—THE HOLD-UP</h2>
<p>After breakfast—leaving a widely grinning waiter,
who watched him admiringly—Taylor reentered
the Pullman.</p>
<p>Stretching out in the upholstered seat, Taylor watched
the flying landscape. But his thoughts were upon the
two men he had overheard talking about the girl in the
diner. Taylor made a grimace of disgust at the great
world through which the train was speeding; and his
feline grin when his thoughts dwelt definitely upon Carrington,
indicated that the genial waiter had not erred
greatly in saying Taylor was not “scary.”</p>
<p>Upon entering, Taylor had flashed a rapid glance into
the car. He had seen Carrington and Parsons sitting together
in one of the seats and, farther down, the girl,
leaning back, was looking out of the window. Her back
was toward Taylor. She had not seen him enter the
car—and he was certain she had not seen him leave it
to go to the diner. He had thought—as he had glanced
at her as he went into the smoking compartment—that,
despite the girl’s seemingly affectionate manner toward
Parsons, and her cordial treatment of the big man, her
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_27'></SPAN>27</span>
manner indicated the presence of a certain restraint. And
as he looked toward her, he wondered if Parsons or the
big man had told her anything of the conversation in the
diner in which he himself figured.</p>
<p>And now, looking out of the window, he decided that
even if the men had told her, she would not betray her
knowledge to him—unless it were to give him another
scornful glance—the kind she threw at him when she
saw him as he sat behind the two men when they had
been talking of Dawes. Taylor reddened and gritted
his teeth impotently; for he knew that if the two men
had told her anything, they would have informed her,
merely, that they had again caught him listening to them.
And for that double offense, Taylor knew there would be
no pardon from her.</p>
<p>Half an hour later, while still thinking of the girl and
the men, Taylor felt the train slowing down. Peering as
far ahead as he could by pressing his face against the
glass of the window, Taylor saw the train was entering a
big cut between some hills. It was a wild section, with
a heavy growth of timber skirting the hills—on Taylor’s
side of the train—and running at a sharp angle toward
the right-of-way came a small river.</p>
<p>Taylor recognized the place as Toban’s Siding. He
did not know how the spot had come by its name; nor
did he know much about it except that there was a spur
of track and a water-tank. And when the train began
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_28'></SPAN>28</span>
to slow down he supposed the engineer had decided to
stop to take on water. He found himself wondering,
though, why that should be necessary, for he was certain
the train had stopped for water a few miles back, while
he had been in the dining-car.</p>
<p>The train was already late, and Taylor grinned as he
settled farther back in the seat and drew a sigh of resignation.
There was no accounting for the whims of an
engineer, he supposed.</p>
<p>He felt the train come to a jerking stop; and then fell
a silence. An instant later the silence was broken by two
sharp reports, a distinct interval between them. Taylor
sat erect, the smile leaving his face, and his lips setting
grimly as the word “Hold-up” came from between them.</p>
<p>Marion Harlan also heard the two reports. Stories of
train robberies—recollections of travelers’ tales recurred
in her brain as she sat, for the first tense instant following
the reports, listening for other sounds. Her face grew
a little pale, and a tremor ran over her; but she did not
feel a bit like screaming—though in all the stories she had
ever read, women always yielded to the hysteria of that
moment in which a train-robber makes his presence known.</p>
<p>She was not frightened, though she was just a trifle
nervous, and more than a trifle curious. So she pressed
her cheek against the window-glass and looked forward.</p>
<p>What she saw caused her to draw back again, her curiosity
satisfied. For on the side of the cut near the engine,
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_29'></SPAN>29</span>
she had seen a man with a rifle—a masked man, tall and
rough-looking—and it seemed to her that the weapon
in his hands was menacing someone in the engine-cab.</p>
<p>She stiffened, looking quickly around the car. None
of the passengers had moved. Carrington and Parsons
were still sitting together in the seat. They were sitting
erect, though, and she saw they, too, were curious. More,
she saw that both men were pale, and that Carrington, the
instant she turned, became active—bending over, apparently
trying to hide something under a seat. That movement
on Carrington’s part was convincing, and the girl
drew a deep breath.</p>
<p>While she was debating the wisdom of permitting her
curiosity to drive her to the door nearest her to determine
what had happened, the door burst open and a
masked man appeared in the opening!</p>
<p>While she stared at him, he uttered the short, terse
command:</p>
<p>“Hands up!”</p>
<p>She supposed that meant her, as well as the men in the
car, and she complied, though with a resentful glare at
the mask.</p>
<p>Daringly she turned her head and glanced back. Carrington
had his hands up, too; and Parsons—and the
tourist, and the other man. She did not see Taylor—though
she wondered, on the instant, if he, too, would
obey the train-robber’s command.
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_30'></SPAN>30</span></p>
<p>She decided he would—any other course would have
been foolhardy; though she could not help remembering
that queer gleam in Taylor’s eyes. That gleam, it had
seemed to her, was a reflection of—not foolhardiness,
but of sheer courage.</p>
<p>However, she had little time to speculate. The masked
man advanced, a heavy gun in his right hand, its muzzle
moving from side to side, menacing them all.</p>
<p>He halted when he had advanced to within a step of the
girl.</p>
<p>“You guys set tight!” he ordered gruffly—in the manner
of the train-robber of romance. “If you go to lettin’
down your sky-hooks one little quiver, I bore you so fast
an’ plenty that you’ll think you’re a colander!” Then
he turned the mask toward the girl; she could feel his
eyes burning through it.</p>
<p>“Shell out, lady!” he commanded.</p>
<p>She stared straight back at the eye-slits in the mask,
defiance glinting her own eyes.</p>
<p>“I haven’t any money—or anything of value—to
give you,” she returned.</p>
<p>“You’ve got a pocketbook there—in your hand!”
he said. “Fork it over!” He removed his hat, held it
in his left hand, and extended it toward her. “Toss it
in there!”</p>
<p>Hesitatingly, she obeyed, though not without a vindictive
satisfaction in knowing that he would find little
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_31'></SPAN>31</span>
in the purse to compensate him for his trouble. She
could see his eyes gleam greedily as he still looked at her.</p>
<p>“Now that chain an’ locket you’ve got around your
neck!” he ordered. “Quick!” he added, savagely, as
she stiffened and glared at him.</p>
<p>She did as she was bidden, though; for she had no
doubt he would kill her—at least his manner indicated
he would. And so she removed it, held it lingering in her
hand for an instant, and then tossed it into the hat. She
gulped as she did so, for the trinket had been given to her
by her father before he left home to go on that pilgrimage
from which he had never returned.</p>
<p>“That’s all, eh?” snarled the man. “Well, I ain’t
swallowin’ that! I’m goin’ to search you!”</p>
<p>She believed she must have screamed at that. She
knew she stood up, prepared to fight him if he attempted
to carry out his threat; and once on her feet she looked
backward.</p>
<p>Neither Carrington nor Parsons had moved—they
were palely silent, watching, not offering to interfere.
As for that, she knew that any sign of interference on
the part of her friends would result in their instant death.
But she did not know what they <em>should</em> do! Something
must be done, for she could not permit the indignity the
man threatened!</p>
<p>Still looking backward, she saw Taylor standing at
the end of the car—where the partition of the smoking-compartment
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_32'></SPAN>32</span>
extended outward. He held a gun in each
hand. He had heard her scream, and on his face as the
girl turned toward him, she saw a mirthless grin that
made her shiver. She believed it must have been her gasp
that caused the train-robber to look swiftly at Taylor.</p>
<p>Whatever had caused the man to look toward the rear
of the car, he saw Taylor; and the girl saw him stiffen
as his pistol roared in her ears. Taylor’s pistols crashed
at the same instant—twice—the reports almost together.
Afterward she could not have told what surprised her
the most—seeing the man at her side drop his pistol and
lurch limply against a corner of the seat opposite her,
and from there slide gently to the floor, grunting; or the
spectacle of Taylor, arrayed in cowboy garb, emerging
from the door of the smoking-compartment, the mirthless
smile on his face, and his guns—he had used both—blazing
forth death to the man who had threatened her.</p>
<p>Nor could she—afterward—have related what followed
the sudden termination of the incident in the car.
Salient memories stood out—the vivid and tragic recollection
of chief incidents that occurred immediately; but
she could not have even guessed how they happened.</p>
<p>She saw Taylor as he stood for an instant looking down
at the man after he came running forward to where the
other lay; and she saw Taylor leap for the front door of
the car, vanish through it, and slam it after him.</p>
<p>For an instant after that there was silence, during
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_33'></SPAN>33</span>
which she shuddered as she tried to keep her gaze from
the thing that lay doubled oddly in the aisle.</p>
<p>And then she heard more shooting. It came from
the direction of the engine—the staccato crashing of
pistols; the shouts of men, their voices raised in anger.</p>
<p>Pressing her cheek against the window-pane, and looking
forward toward the engine, she saw Taylor. With a
gun in each hand, he was running down the little level
between the track and the steep wall of the cut, toward
her. She noted that his face still wore the mirthless
grin that had been on it when he shot the train-robber
in the car; though his eyes were alight with the lust of
battle—that was all too plain—and she shivered. For
Taylor, having killed one man, and grimly pursuing
others, seemed to suggest the spirit of this grim, rugged
country—the threat of death that seemed to linger on
every hand.</p>
<p>She saw him snap a shot as he ran, bending far over
to send the bullet under the car; she heard a pistol crash
from the other side of the car; and then she saw Taylor
go to his knees.</p>
<p>She gasped with horror and held to the window-sill, for
she feared Taylor had been killed. But almost instantly
she saw her error, for Taylor was on his hands and knees
crawling when she could again concentrate her gaze; and
she knew he was crawling under the car to catch the
man who had shot from the other side.
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_34'></SPAN>34</span></p>
<p>Then Taylor disappeared, and she did not see him
for a time. She heard shots, though; many of them;
and then, after a great while, a silence. And during the
silence she sat very still, her face white and her lips stiff,
waiting.</p>
<p>The silence seemed to endure for an age; and then it
was broken by the sound of voices, the opening of the
door of the car, and the appearance of Taylor and some
other men—several members of the train-crew; the express-messenger;
the engineer, his right arm hanging
limply—and two men, preceding the others, their hands
bound, their faces sullen.</p>
<p>On Taylor’s face was the grin that had been on it all
along. The girl wondered at the man’s marvelous self-control—for
certainly during those moments of excitement
and danger he must have been aware of the terrible
risk he had been running. And then the thought struck
her—she had not considered that phase of the situation
before—that she <em>must</em> have screamed; that he had heard
her, and had emerged from the smoking-room to protect
her. She blushed, gratitude and a riot of other emotions
overwhelming her, so that she leaned weakly back in the
seat, succumbing to the inevitable reaction.</p>
<p>She did not look at Taylor again; she did not even see
him as he walked toward the rear of the car, followed by
the train-crew, and preceded by the two train-robbers he
had captured.
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_35'></SPAN>35</span></p>
<p>But as the train-crew passed her, she heard one of them
say:</p>
<p>“That guy’s a whirlwind with a gun! Didn’t do no
hesitatin’, did he?”</p>
<p>And again:</p>
<p>“Now, what do you suppose would make a guy jump
in that way an’ run a chance of gettin’ plugged—plenty?
Do you reckon he was just yearnin’ fer trouble, or do
you reckon they was somethin’ else behind it?”</p>
<p>The girl might have answered, but she did not. She
sat very still, comparing Carrington with this man who
had plunged instantly into a desperate gun-fight to protect
her. And she knew that Carrington would not have
done as Taylor had done. And had Carrington seen her
face just at that moment he would have understood that
there was no possibility of him ever achieving the success
of which he had dreamed.</p>
<p>She heard one of the men say that the two men were
to be placed in the baggage-car until they reached Dawes;
and then Carrington and Parsons came to where she sat.</p>
<p>They talked, but the girl did not hear them, for her
thoughts were on the picture Taylor made when he appeared
at the door of the smoking-compartment arrayed
in his cowboy rigging, the grim smile on his face, his guns
flaming death to the man who thought to take advantage
of her helplessness.</p>
<h2><span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_36'></SPAN>36</span><SPAN name='chV' id='chV'></SPAN>CHAPTER V—THE UNEXPECTED</h2>
<p>The train pulled out again presently, and the water-tank
and the cut were rapidly left in the rear. Taylor
returned to the smoking-room and resumed his seat,
and while the girl looked out of the window, some men of
the train-crew removed the body of the train-robber and
obliterated all traces of the fight. And Carrington and
Parsons, noting the girl’s abstractedness, again left her to
herself.</p>
<p>It had been the girl’s first glimpse of a man in cowboy
raiment, and, as she reflected, she knew she might have
known Taylor was an unusual man. However, she knew
it now.</p>
<p>Cursory glances at drawings she had seen made her
familiar with the type, but the cowboys of those drawings
had been magnificently arrayed in leather <em>chaparajos</em>,
usually fringed with spangles; and with long-roweled
spurs; magnificent wide brims—also bespangled, and
various other articles of personal adornment, bewildering
and awe inspiring.</p>
<p>But this man, though undoubtedly a cow-puncher, was
minus the magnificent raiment of the drawings. And,
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_37'></SPAN>37</span>
paradoxical as it may seem, the absence of any magnificent
trappings made <em>him</em> seem magnificent.</p>
<p>But she was not so sure that it was the lack of those
things that gave her that impression. He did not <em>bulge</em> in
his cowboy clothing; it fitted him perfectly. She was sure
it was he who gave magnificence to the clothing. Anyway,
she was certain he was magnificent, and her eyes glowed.
She knew, now that she had seen him in clothing to which
he was accustomed, and which he knew how to wear, that
she would have been more interested in him yesterday
had he appeared before her arrayed as he was at this
moment.</p>
<p>He had shown himself capable, self-reliant, confident.
She would have given him her entire admiration had it
not been for the knowledge that she had caught him
eavesdropping. That action had almost damned him in
her estimation—it would have completely and irrevocably
condemned him had it not been for her recollection of the
stern, almost savage interest she had seen in his eyes
while he had been listening to Carrington and Parsons.</p>
<p>She knew because of that expression that Carrington
and Parsons had been discussing something in which
he took a personal interest. She had not said so much
to Carrington, but her instinct told her, warned her, gave
her a presentiment of impending trouble. That was what
she had meant when she had told Carrington she had
seen <em>fighting</em> in Taylor’s eyes.
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_38'></SPAN>38</span></p>
<p>Taylor confined himself to the smoking-compartment.
The negro porter, with pleasing memories of generous
tips and a grimmer memory to exact his worship, hung
around him, eager to serve him, and to engage him in
conversation; once he grinningly mentioned the incident
of the cast-off clothing of the night before.</p>
<p>“I ain’t mentionin’ it, boss—not at all! I ain’t givin’
you them duds till you ast for them. You done took me
by s’prise, boss—you shuah did. I might’ near caved
when you shoved that gun under ma nose—I shuah did,
boss. I don’t want to have nothin’ to do with your gun,
boss—I shuah don’t. She’d go ‘pop,’ an’ I wouldn’t be
heah no more!</p>
<p>“I didn’t reco’nize you in them heathen clo’s you had
on yesterday, boss; but I minds you with them duds on.
I knows you; you’re ‘Squint’ Taylor, of Dawes. I’ve
seen you on that big black hoss of yourn, a prancin’ an’ a
prancin’ through town—more’n once I’ve seen you. But
I didn’t know you in them heathen clo’s yesterday, boss—’deed
I didn’t!”</p>
<p>Later the porter slipped into the compartment. For a
minute or two he fussed around the room, setting things
to order, meanwhile chuckling to himself. Occasionally
he would cease his activities long enough to slap a knee
with the palm of a hand, with which movement he would
seem to be convulsed with merriment, and then he would
resume work, chuckling audibly.
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_39'></SPAN>39</span></p>
<p>For a time Taylor took no notice of his antics, but they
assailed his consciousness presently, and finally he asked:</p>
<p>“What’s eating you, George?”</p>
<p>The query was evidently just what “George” had
been waiting for. For now he turned and looked at Taylor,
his face solemn, but a white gleam of mirth in his
eyes belying the solemnity.</p>
<p>“Tips is comin’ easy for George this mornin’,” he said;
“they shuah is. No trouble at all. If a man wants to
get tips all he has to be is a dictionary—he, he, he!”</p>
<p>“So you’re a dictionary, eh? Well, explain the meaning
of this.” And he tossed a silver dollar to the other.</p>
<p>The dollar in hand, George tilted his head sidewise at
Taylor.</p>
<p>“How on earth you know I got somethin’ to tell you?”</p>
<p>“How do I know I’ve got two hands?”</p>
<p>“By lookin’ at them, boss.”</p>
<p>“Well, that’s how I know you’ve got something to tell
me—by looking at you.”</p>
<p>The porter chuckled. “I reckon it’s worth a dollar
to have a young lady interested in you,” he told himself
in a confidential voice, without looking at Taylor; “yassir,
it’s sure worth a dollar.” He slapped his knee delightedly.
“That young lady a heap interested in you,
’pears like. While ago she pens me in a corner of the
platform. ‘Porter, who’s that man in the smoking-compartment—that
cowboy? What’s his name, an’ where
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_40'></SPAN>40</span>
does he live?’ I hesitates, ’cause I didn’t want to betray
no secrets—an’ scratch my haid. Then she pop half a
dollar in my hand, an’ I tole her you are Squint Taylor,
an’ that you own the Arrow ranch, not far from Dawes.
An’ she thank me an’ go away, grinnin’.”</p>
<p>“And the young lady, George; do you know her
name?”</p>
<p>“Them men she’s travelin’ with calls her Marion, boss.”</p>
<p>He peered intently at Taylor for signs of interest. He
saw no such signs, and after a while, noting that Taylor
seemed preoccupied, and was evidently no longer aware
of his presence, he slipped out noiselessly.</p>
<p>At nine thirty, Taylor, looking out of the car window,
noted that the country was growing familiar. Fifteen
minutes later the porter stuck his head in between the
curtains, saw that Taylor was still absorbed, and withdrew.
At nine fifty-five the porter entered the compartment.</p>
<p>“We’ll be in Dawes in five minutes, boss,” he said.
“I’ve toted your baggage to the door.”</p>
<p>The porter withdrew, and a little later Taylor got up
and went out into the aisle. At the far end of the car,
near the door, he saw Marion Harlan, Parsons, and
Carrington.</p>
<p>He did not want to meet them again after what had
occurred in the diner, and he cast a glance toward the
door behind him, hoping that the porter had carried his
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_41'></SPAN>41</span>
baggage to that end of the car. But the platform was
empty—his suitcase was at the other end.</p>
<p>He slipped into a seat on the side of the train that would
presently disclose to him a view of Dawes’s depot, and
of Dawes itself, leaned an elbow on the window-sill, and
waited. Apparently the three persons at the other end of
the car paid no attention to him, but glancing sidelong
once he saw the girl throw an interested glance at him.</p>
<p>And then the air-brakes hissed; he felt the train slowing
down, and he got up and walked slowly toward the
girl and her companions. At about the same instant she
and the others began to move toward the door; so that
when the train came to a stop they were on the car platform
by the time Taylor reached the door. And by the
time he stepped out upon the car platform the girl and
her friends were on the station platform, their baggage
piled at their feet.</p>
<p>Dawes’s depot was merely a roofless platform; and
there was no shelter from the glaring white sun that
flooded it. The change from the subdued light of the
coach to the shimmering, blinding glare of the sun on
the wooden planks of the platform affected Taylor’s eyes,
and he was forced to look downward as he alighted. And
then, not looking up, he went to the baggage-car and
pulled his two prisoners out.</p>
<p>Looking up as he walked down the platform with the
two men, he saw a transformed Dawes.
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_42'></SPAN>42</span></p>
<p>The little, frame station building had been a red, dingy
blot beside the glistening rails that paralleled the town.
It was now gaily draped with bunting—red, white, and
blue—which he recognized as having been used on the
occasion of the town’s anniversary celebration.</p>
<p>A big American flag topped the ridge of the station;
other flags projected from various angles of the
frame.</p>
<p>Most of the town’s other buildings were replicas of the
station in the matter of decorations—festoons of bunting
ran here and there from building to building; broad
bands of it were stretched across the fronts of other buildings;
gay loops of it crossed the street, suspended to form
triumphal arches; flags, wreaths of laurel, Japanese lanterns,
and other paraphernalia of the decorator’s art were
everywhere.</p>
<p>Down the street near the Castle Hotel, Taylor saw
transparencies, but he could not make out the words on
them.</p>
<p>He grinned, for certainly the victor of yesterday’s
election was outdoing himself.</p>
<p>He looked into the face of a man who stood near him
on the platform—who answered his grin.</p>
<p>“Our new mayor is celebrating in style, eh?” he said.</p>
<p>“Right!” declared the man.</p>
<p>He was about to ask the man which candidate had been
victorious—though he was certain it was Neil Norton—when
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_43'></SPAN>43</span>
he saw Marion Harlan, standing a little distance
from him, smiling at him.</p>
<p>It was a broad, impersonal smile, such as one citizen
of a town might exchange with another when both are
confronted with the visible evidences of political victory;
and Taylor responded to it with one equally impersonal.
Whereat the girl’s smile faded, and her gaze, still upon
Taylor, became speculative. Its quality told Taylor that
he should not presume upon the smile.</p>
<p>Taylor had no intention of presuming anything. Not
even the porter’s story of the girl’s interest in him had
affected him to the extent of fatuous imaginings. A
woman’s curiosity, he supposed, had led her to inquire
about him. He expected she rarely saw men arrayed as
he was—and as he had been arrayed the day before.</p>
<p>The girl’s gaze went from Taylor to the street in the
immediate vicinity of the station, and for the first time
since alighting on the platform Taylor saw a mass of
people near him.</p>
<p>Looking sharply at them, he saw many faces in the
mass that he knew. They all seemed to be looking at him
and, with the suddenness of a stroke came to him the
consciousness that there was no sound—that silence, deep
and unusual, reigned in Dawes. The train, usually merely
stopping at the station and then resuming its trip, was
still standing motionless behind him. With a sidelong
glance he saw the train-crew standing near the steps of
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_44'></SPAN>44</span>
the cars, looking at him. The porter and the waiter with
whose faces he was familiar, were grinning at him.</p>
<p>Taylor felt that his own grin, as he gazed around at the
faces that were all turned toward him, was vacuous and
foolish. He <em>felt</em> foolish. For he knew something had
attracted the attention of all these people to him, and he
had not the slightest idea what it was. For an instant
he feared that through some mental lapse he had forgotten
to remove his “dude” clothing; and he looked down at
his trousers and felt of his shirt, to reassure himself.
And he gravely and intently looked at his prisoners, wondering
if by any chance some practical joker of the town
had arranged the train robbery for his special benefit.
If that were the explanation it had been grim hoax—for
two men had been killed in the fight.</p>
<p>Looking up again, he saw that the grins on the faces
of the people around him had grown broader—and several
loud guffaws of laughter reached his ears. He looked
at Marion Harlan, and saw a puzzled expression on her
face. Carrington, too, was looking at him, and Parsons,
whose smile was a smirk of perplexity.</p>
<p>Taylor reddened with embarrassment. A resentment
that grew swiftly to an angry intolerance, seized him.
He straightened, squared his shoulders, thrust out his
chin, and shoving his prisoners before him, took several
long strides across the station platform.</p>
<p>This movement brought him close to Marion Harlan
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_45'></SPAN>45</span>
and her friends, and his further progress was barred by
a man who placed a hand against his chest.</p>
<p>This man, too, was grinning. He seized Taylor’s
shoulders with both hands and looked into his face, the
grin on his own broad and expanding.</p>
<p>“Welcome home—you old son-of-a-gun!” said the
man.</p>
<p>His grin was infectious and Taylor answered it, dropping
his suitcase and looking the other straight in the
eyes.</p>
<p>“Norton,” he said, “what in hell is the cause of all
this staring at me? Can’t a man leave town for a few
days and come back without everybody looking at him
as though he were a curiosity?”</p>
<p>Norton—a tall, slender, sinewy man with broad shoulders—laughed
aloud and deliberately winked at several
interested citizens who had followed Taylor’s progress
across the platform, and who now stood near him,
grinning.</p>
<p>“You are a curiosity, man. You’re the first mayor
of this man’s town! Lordy,” he said to the surrounding
faces, “he hasn’t tumbled to it yet!”</p>
<p>The color left Taylor’s face; he stared hard at Norton;
he gazed in bewilderment at the faces near him.</p>
<p>“Mayor?” he said. “Why, good Lord, man, I wasn’t
here yesterday!”</p>
<p>“But your friends were!” yelped the delighted Norton.
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_46'></SPAN>46</span>
He raised his voice, so that it reached far into the crowd
on the street:</p>
<p>“He’s sort of fussed up, boys; this honor being conferred
on him so sudden; but give him time and he’ll talk
your heads off!” He leaned over to Taylor and whispered
in his ear.</p>
<p>“Grin, man, for God’s sake! Don’t stand there like a
wooden man; they’ll think you don’t appreciate it! It’s
the first time I ever saw you lose your nerve. Buck up,
man; why, they simply swamped Danforth; wiped him
clean off the map!”</p>
<p>Norton was whispering more into Taylor’s ear, but
Taylor could not follow the sequence of it, nor get a
coherent meaning out of it. He even doubted that he
heard Norton. He straightened, and looked around at
the crowd that now was pressing in on him, and for the
first time in his life he knew the mental panic and the
physical sickness that overtakes the man who for the
first time faces an audience whose eyes are focused on
him.</p>
<p>For a bag of gold as big as the mountains that loomed
over the distant southern horizon he could not have said
a word to the crowd. But he did succeed in grinning at
the faces around him, and at that the crowd yelled.</p>
<p>And just before the crowd closed in on him and he
began to shake hands with his delighted supporters, he
glanced at Marion Harlan. She was looking at him with
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_47'></SPAN>47</span>
a certain sober interest, though he was sure that back in
her eyes was a sort of humorous malice—which had,
however, a softening quality of admiration and, perhaps,
gratitude.</p>
<p>His gaze went from her to Carrington. The big man
was watching him with a veiled sneer which, when he met
Taylor’s eyes, grew open and unmistakable.</p>
<p>Taylor grinned broadly at him, for now it occurred to
him that he would be able to thwart Carrington’s designs
of “getting hold of the reins.” His grin at Carrington
was a silent challenge, and so the other interpreted it,
for his sneer grew positively venomous.</p>
<p>The girl caught the exchange of glances between them,
for Taylor heard her say to Parsons, just before the
noise of the crowd drowned her voice:</p>
<p>“Now I <em>know</em> he overheard you!”</p>
<p>Meanwhile, the two prisoners were standing near
Taylor. Taylor had almost forgotten them. He was
reminded of their presence when he saw Keats, the sheriff,
standing near him. At just the instant Taylor looked at
Keats, the latter was critically watching the prisoners.</p>
<p>Keats and Taylor had had many differences of opinion,
for the sheriff’s official actions had not merited nor received
Taylor’s approval. Taylor’s attitude toward the
man had always been that of good-natured banter, despite
the disgust he felt for the man. And now, pursuing his
customary attitude, Taylor called to him:
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_48'></SPAN>48</span></p>
<p>“Specimens, eh! Picked them up at Toban’s this
morning. They yearned to hold up the train. There
were four, all together, but we had to put two out of
business. I came pretty near forgetting them. If I
hadn’t seen you just now, maybe I would have walked
right off and left them here. Take them to jail, Keats.”</p>
<p>Keats advanced. He met Taylor’s eyes and his lips
curved with a sneer:</p>
<p>“Pullin’ off a little grand-stand play, eh! Well, it’s
a mighty clever idea. First you get elected mayor, an’
then you come in here, draggin’ along a couple of mean-lookin’
hombres, an’ say they’ve tried to hold up the train
at Toban’s. It sounds mighty fishy to me!”</p>
<p>Taylor laughed. He heard a chuckle behind him, and
he turned, to see Carrington grinning significantly at
Keats. Taylor’s eyes chilled as his gaze went from one
man to the other, for the exchange of glances told him
that between the men there was a common interest, which
would link them together against him. And in the dead
silence that followed Keats’s words, Taylor drawled,
grinning coldly:</p>
<p>“Meaning that I’m a liar, Keats?”</p>
<p>His voice was gentle, and his shoulders seemed to droop
a little as though in his mind was a desire to placate
Keats. But there were men in Dawes who had seen
Taylor work his guns, and these held their breath and
began to shove backward. That slow, drooping of
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_49'></SPAN>49</span>
Taylor’s shoulders was a danger signal, a silent warning
that Taylor was ready for action, swift and violent.</p>
<p>And faces around Taylor whitened as the man stood
there facing Keats, his shoulders drooping still lower,
the smile on his face becoming one of cold, grim mockery.</p>
<p>The discomfiture of Keats was apparent. Indecision
and fear were in the set of his head—bowed a little;
and a dread reluctance was in his shifting eyes and the
pasty-white color of his face. It was plain that Keats
had overplayed; he had not intended to arouse the latent
tiger in Taylor; he had meant merely to embarrass him.</p>
<p>“Meaning that I’m a liar, Keats?”</p>
<p>Again Taylor’s voice was gentle, though this time it
carried a subtle taunt.</p>
<p>Desperately harried, Keats licked his hot lips and cast
a sullen glance around at the crowd. Then his gaze went
to Taylor’s face, and he drew a slow breath.</p>
<p>“I reckon I wasn’t meanin’ just that,” he said.</p>
<p>“Of course,” smiled Taylor; “that’s no way for a
sheriff to act. Take them in, Keats,” he added, waving
a hand at the prisoners; “it’s been so long since the sheriff
of this county arrested a man that the jail’s gettin’ tired,
yawning for somebody to get into it.”</p>
<p>He turned his back on Keats and looked straight at
Carrington:</p>
<p>“Have you got any ideas along the sheriff’s line?” he
asked.
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_50'></SPAN>50</span></p>
<p>Carrington flushed and his lips went into a sullen pout.
He did not speak, merely shaking his head, negatively.</p>
<p>Keats’s glance at Taylor was malignant with hate; and
Carrington’s sullen, venomous look was not unnoticed by
the crowd. Keats stepped forward and seized the two
prisoners, hustling them away, muttering profanely.</p>
<p>And then Taylor was led away by Norton and a committee
of citizens, leaving Carrington, the girl and Parsons
alone on the platform.</p>
<p>“Looks like we’re going to have trouble lining things
up,” remarked Parsons. “Danforth——”</p>
<p>“You shut up!” snapped Carrington. “Danforth’s an
ass and so are you!”</p>
<h2><span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_51'></SPAN>51</span><SPAN name='chVI' id='chVI'></SPAN>CHAPTER VI—A MAN MAKES PLANS</h2>
<p>Within an hour after his arrival in Dawes, Carrington
was sitting in the big front room of his
suite in the Castle Hotel, inspecting the town.</p>
<p>A bay window projected over the sidewalk, and from
a big leather chair placed almost in the center of the bay
between two windows and facing a third, at the front,
Carrington had a remarkably good view of the town.</p>
<p>Dawes was a thriving center of activity, with reasons
for its prosperity. Walking toward the Castle from the
railroad station, Carrington had caught a glimpse of the
big dam blocking the constricted neck of a wide basin
west of the town—and farther westward stretched a
vast agricultural section, level as a floor, with a carpet
of green slumbering in the white sunlight, and dotted
with young trees that seemed almost ready to bear.</p>
<p>There were many small buildings on the big level, some
tenthouses, and straight through the level was a wide,
sparkling stream of water, with other and smaller streams
intersecting it. These streams were irrigation ditches,
and the moisture in them was giving life to a vast section
of country that had previously been arid and dead.
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_52'></SPAN>52</span></p>
<p>But Carrington’s interest had not been so much for
the land as for the method of irrigation. To be sure, he
had not stopped long to look, but he had comprehended
the system at a glance. There were locks and flumes
and water-gates, and plenty of water. But the irrigation
company had not completed its system. Carrington
intended to complete it.</p>
<p>Dawes was two years old, and it had the appearance of
having been hastily constructed. Its buildings were
mostly of frame—even the Castle, large and pretentious,
and the town’s aristocrat of hostelries, was of frame.
Carrington smiled, for later, when he had got himself
established, he intended to introduce an innovation in
building material.</p>
<p>The courthouse was a frame structure. It was directly
across the street from the Castle, and Carrington could
look into its windows and see some men at work inside
at desks. He had no interest in the post office, for that
was of the national government—and yet, perhaps, after
a while he might take some interest in that.</p>
<p>For Carrington’s vision, though selfish, was broad. A
multitude of men of the Carrington type have taken bold
positions in the eternal battle for progress, and all have
contributed something toward the ultimate ideal. And
not all have been scoundrels.</p>
<p>Carrington’s vision, however, was blurred by the mote
of greed. Dawes was flourishing; he intended to modernize
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_53'></SPAN>53</span>
it, but in the process of modernization he intended
to be the chief recipient of the material profits.</p>
<p>Carrington had washed, shaved himself, and changed
his clothes; and as he sat in the big leather chair in the
bay, overlooking the street, he looked smooth, sleek, and
capable.</p>
<p>He had seemed massive in the Pullman, wearing a
traveling suit of some light material, and his corpulent
waist-line had been somewhat accentuated.</p>
<p>The blue serge suit he wore now made a startling
change in his appearance. It made his shoulders seem
broader; it made the wide, swelling arch of his chest
more pronounced, and in inverse ratio it contracted the
corpulent waist-line—almost eliminating it.</p>
<p>Carrington looked to be what he was—a big, virile,
magnetic giant of a man in perfect health.</p>
<p>He had not been sitting in the leather chair for more
than fifteen minutes when there came a knock on a door
behind him.</p>
<p>“Come!” he commanded.</p>
<p>A tall man entered, closed the door behind him and
with hat in hand stood looking at Carrington with a half-smile
which might have been slightly diffident, or impudent
or defiant—it was puzzling.</p>
<p>Carrington had twisted in his chair to get a glimpse
of his visitor; he now grunted, resumed his former position
and said, gruffly:
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_54'></SPAN>54</span></p>
<p>“Hello, Danforth!”</p>
<p>Danforth stepped over to the bay, and without invitation
drew up a chair and seated himself near Carrington.</p>
<p>Danforth was slender, big-framed, and sinewy. His
shoulders were broad and his waist slim. There was a
stubborn thrust to his chin; his nose was a trifle too long
to perfectly fit his face; his mouth a little too big, and
the lips too thin. The nose had a slight droop that made
one think of selfishness and greed, and the thin lips, with
a downward swerve at the corners, suggested cruelty.</p>
<p>These defects, however, were not prominent, for they
were offset by a really distinguished head with a mass of
short, curly hair that ruffled attractively under the brim
of the felt hat he wore.</p>
<p>The hat was in his right hand, now, but it had left its
impress on his hair, and as he sat down he ran his free
hand through it. Danforth knew where his attractions
were.</p>
<p>He grinned shallowly at Carrington when the latter
turned and looked at him.</p>
<p>He cleared his throat. “I suppose you’ve heard
about it?”</p>
<p>“I couldn’t help hearing.” Carrington scowled at the
other. “What in hell was wrong? We send you out
here, give you more than a year’s time and all the money
you want—which has been plenty—and then you lose.
What in the devil was the matter?”
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_55'></SPAN>55</span></p>
<p>“Too much Taylor,” smirked the other.</p>
<p>“But what else?”</p>
<p>“Nothing else—just Taylor.”</p>
<p>Carrington exclaimed profanely.</p>
<p>“Why, the man didn’t even know he was a candidate!
He was on the train I came in on!”</p>
<p>“It was Neil Norton’s scheme,” explained Danforth.
“I had <em>him</em> beaten to a frazzle. I suppose he knew it.
Two days before election he suddenly withdrew his name
and substituted Taylor’s. You know what happened.
He licked me two to one. He was too popular for me—damn
him!</p>
<p>“Norton owns a newspaper here—the only one in
the county—the <em>Eagle</em>.”</p>
<p>“Why didn’t you buy him?”</p>
<p>Danforth grinned sarcastically: “I didn’t feel that
reckless.”</p>
<p>“Honest, eh?”</p>
<p>Carrington rested his chin in the palm of his right hand
and scowled into the street. He was convinced that Danforth
had done everything he could to win the election,
and he was bitterly chagrined over the result. But that
result was not the dominating thought in his mind. He
kept seeing Taylor as the latter had stood on the station
platform, stunned with surprise over the knowledge
that he had been so signally honored by the people of
Dawes.
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_56'></SPAN>56</span></p>
<p>And Carrington had seen Marion Harlan’s glances at
the man; he had been aware of the admiring smile she
had given Taylor; and bitter passion gripped Carrington
at the recollection of the smile.</p>
<p>More—he had seen Taylor’s face when the girl had
smiled. The smile had thrilled Taylor—it had held
promise for him, and Carrington knew it.</p>
<p>Carrington continued to stare out into the street. Danforth
watched him furtively, in silence.</p>
<p>At last, not opening his lips, Carrington spoke:</p>
<p>“Tell me about this man, Taylor.”</p>
<p>“Taylor owns the Arrow ranch, in the basin south of
here. His ranch covers about twenty thousand acres. He
has a clear title.</p>
<p>“According to report, he employs about thirty men.
They are holy terrors—that is, they are what is called
‘hard cases,’ though they are not outlaws by any means.
Just a devil-may-care bunch that raises hell when it strikes
town. They swear by Taylor.”</p>
<p>So far as Carrington could see, everybody in Dawes
swore by Taylor. Carrington grimaced.</p>
<p>“That isn’t what I want to know,” he flared. “How
long has he been here; what kind of a fellow is he?”</p>
<p>“Taylor owned the Arrow before Dawes was founded.
When the railroad came through it brought with it some
land-sharks that tried to frame up on the ranch-owners in
the vicinity. It was a slick scheme, they tell me. They
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_57'></SPAN>57</span>
had clouded every title, and figured to grab the whole
county, it seems.</p>
<p>“Taylor went after them. People I’ve talked with
here say it was a dandy shindy while it lasted. The land-grabbers
brought the courts in, and a crooked judge.
Taylor fought them, crooked judge and all, to a bite-the-dust
finish. Toward the end it was a free-for-all—and
the land-grabbers were chased out of the county.</p>
<p>“Naturally, the folks around here think a lot of Taylor
for the part he played in the deal. Besides that, he’s
a man that makes friends quickly—and holds them.”</p>
<p>“Has Taylor any interests besides his ranch?”</p>
<p>“A share in the water company, I believe. He owns
some land in town; and he is usually on all the public
committees here.”</p>
<p>“About thirty, isn’t he?”</p>
<p>“Twenty-eight.”</p>
<p>Carrington looked at the other with a sidelong, sneering
grin:</p>
<p>“Have any ladies come into his young life?”</p>
<p>Danforth snickered. “You’ve got me—I hadn’t inquired.
He doesn’t seem to be much of a ladies’ man,
though, I take it. Doesn’t seem to have time to monkey
with them.”</p>
<p>“H-m!” Carrington’s lips went into a pout as he
stared straight ahead of him.</p>
<p>Danforth at last broke a long silence with:
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_58'></SPAN>58</span></p>
<p>“Well, we got licked, all right. What’s going to happen
now? Are you going to quit?”</p>
<p>“Quit?” Carrington snapped the word at the other,
his eyes flaming with rage. Then he laughed, mirthlessly,
resuming: “This defeat was unexpected; I wasn’t set
for it. But it won’t alter things—very much. I’ll have
to shake a leg, that’s all. What time does the next train
leave here for the capital?”</p>
<p>“At two o’clock this afternoon.” Danforth’s eyes
widened as he looked at Carrington. The curiosity in his
glance caused Carrington to laugh shortly.</p>
<p>“You don’t mean that the governor is in this thing?”
said Danforth.</p>
<p>“Why not?” demanded Carrington. “Bah! Do you
think I came in with my eyes closed!”</p>
<p>There was a new light in Danforth’s eyes—the flame
of renewed hope.</p>
<p>“Then we’ve still got a chance,” he declared.</p>
<p>Carrington laughed. “A too-popular mayor is not a
good thing for a town,” he said significantly.</p>
<h2><span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_59'></SPAN>59</span><SPAN name='chVII' id='chVII'></SPAN>CHAPTER VII—THE SHADOW OF THE PAST</h2>
<p>Marion Harlan and her uncle, Elam Parsons,
did not accompany Carrington to the Castle Hotel.
By telegraph, through Danforth, Carrington had bought
a house near Dawes, and shortly after Quinton Taylor
left the station platform accompanied by his friends and
admirers, Marion and her uncle were in a buckboard riding
toward the place that, henceforth, was to be their
home.</p>
<p>For that question had been settled before the party left
Westwood. Parsons had declared his future activities
were to be centered in Dawes, that he had no further
interests to keep him in Westwood, and that he intended
to make his home in Dawes.</p>
<p>Certainly Marion had few interests in the town that
had been the scene of the domestic tragedy that had left
her parentless. She was glad to get away. For though
she had not been to blame for what had happened, she
was painfully conscious of the stares that followed her
everywhere, and aware of the morbid curiosity with
which her neighbors regarded her. Also—through the
medium of certain of her “friends,” she had become
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_60'></SPAN>60</span>
cognizant of speculative whisperings, such as: “To think
of being brought up like that? Do you think she will be
like her mother?” Or—“What’s bred in the bone, <em>et
cetera</em>.”</p>
<p>Perhaps these good people did not mean to be unkind;
certainly the crimson stains that colored the girl’s cheeks
when she passed them should have won their charity and
their silence.</p>
<p>There was nothing in Westwood for her; and so she
was glad to get away. And the trip westward toward
Dawes opened a new vista of life to her. She was leaving
the old and the tragic and adventuring into the new
and promising, where she could face life without the onus
of a shame that had not been hers.</p>
<p>Before she was half way to Dawes she had forgotten
Westwood and its wagging tongues. She alone, of all
the passengers in the Pullman, had not been aware of the
heat and the discomfort. She had loved every foot of the
great prairie land that, green and beautiful, had flashed
past the car window; she had gazed with eager, interested
eyes into the far reaches of the desert through which she
had passed, filling her soul with the mystic beauty of this
new world, reveling in its vastness and in the atmosphere
of calm that seemed to engulf it.</p>
<p>Dawes had not disappointed her; on the contrary, she
loved it at first sight. For though Dawes was new and
crude, it looked rugged and honest—and rather too
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_61'></SPAN>61</span>
busy to hesitate for the purpose of indulging in gossip—idle
or otherwise. Dawes, she was certain, was occupying
itself with progress—a thing that, long since, Westwood
had forgotten.</p>
<p>Five minutes after she had entered the buckboard, the
spirit of this new world had seized upon the girl and
she was athrob and atingle with the joy of it. It filled
her veins; it made her cheeks flame and her eyes dance.
And the strange aroma—the pungent breath of the sage,
borne to her on the slight breeze—she drew into her
lungs with great long breaths that seemed to intoxicate
her.</p>
<p>“Oh,” she exclaimed delightedly, “isn’t it great! Oh,
I love it!”</p>
<p>Elam Parsons grinned at her—the habitual smirk with
which he recognized all emotion not his own.</p>
<p>“It <em>does</em> look like a good field for business,” he
conceded.</p>
<p>The girl looked at him quickly, divined the sordidness
of his thoughts, and puckered her brows in a frown. And
thereafter she enjoyed the esthetic beauties of her world
without seeking confirmation from her uncle.</p>
<p>Her delight grew as the journey to the new home progressed.
She saw the fertile farming country stretching
far in the big section of country beyond the water-filled
basin; her eyes glowed as the irrigation ditches, with
their locks and gates, came under her observation; and
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_62'></SPAN>62</span>
she sat silent, awed by the mightiness of it all—the tall,
majestic mountains looming somberly many miles distant
behind a glowing mist—like a rose veil or a gauze
curtain lowered to partly conceal the mystic beauty of
them.</p>
<p>Intervening were hills and flats and draws and valleys,
and miles and miles of level grass land, green and peaceful
in the shimmering sunlight that came from somewhere
near the center of the big, pale-blue inverted bowl
of sky; she caught the silvery glitter of a river that wound
its way through the country like a monstrous serpent; she
saw dark blotches, miles long, which she knew were forests,
for she could see the spires of trees thrusting upward.
But from where she rode the trees seemed to be no larger
than bushes.</p>
<p>Looking backward, she could see Dawes. Already the
buckboard had traveled two or three miles, but the town
seemed near, and she had quite a shock when she looked
back at it and saw the buildings, mere huddled shanties,
spoiling the beauty of her picture.</p>
<p>A mile or so farther—four miles altogether, Parsons
told her—and they came in sight of a house. She had
difficulty restraining her delight when they climbed out
of the buckboard and Parsons told her the place was to
be their permanent home. For it was such a house as
she had longed to live in all the days of her life.</p>
<p>The first impression it gave her was that of spaciousness.
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_63'></SPAN>63</span>
For though only one story in height, the house
contained many rooms. Those, however, she saw later.</p>
<p>The exterior was what intrigued her interest at first
glance. So far as she knew, it was the only brick building
in the country. She had seen none such in Dawes.</p>
<p>There was a big porch across the front; the windows
were large; there were vines and plants thriving in the
shade from some big cottonwood trees near by—in fact,
the house seemed to have been built in a grove of the
giant trees; there were several outhouses, one of which
had chickens in an enclosure near it; there was a garden,
well-kept; and the girl saw that back of the house ran
a little stream which flowed sharply downward, later
to tumble into the big basin far below the irrigation
dam.</p>
<p>While Parsons was superintending the unloading of
the buckboard, Marion explored the house. It was completely
furnished, and her eyes glowed with pleasure as
she inspected it. And when Parsons and the driver were
carrying the baggage in she was outside the house, standing
at the edge of a butte whose precipitous walls descended
sharply to the floor of the irrigation basin, two
or three hundred feet below. She could no longer see the
cultivated level, with its irrigation ditches, but she could
see the big dam, a mile or so up the valley toward Dawes,
with the water creeping over it, and the big valley itself,
slumbering in the pure, white light of the morning.
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_64'></SPAN>64</span></p>
<p>She went inside, slightly awed, and Parsons, noting her
excitement, smirked at her. She left him and went to
her room. Emerging later she discovered that Parsons
was not in the house. She saw him, however, at a distance,
looking out into the valley.</p>
<p>And then, in the kitchen, Marion came upon the housekeeper,
a negro woman of uncertain age. Parsons had
not told her there was to be a housekeeper.</p>
<p>The negro woman grinned broadly at her astonishment.</p>
<p>“Lawsey, ma’am; you jes’ got to have a housekeeper,
I reckon! How you ever git along without a housekeeper?
You’re too fine an’ dainty to keep house you’self!”</p>
<p>The woman’s name, the latter told her, was Martha,
and there was honest delight—and, it seemed to Marion,
downright relief in her eyes when she looked at the new
mistress.</p>
<p>“You ain’t got no ‘past,’ that’s certain, honey,” she
declared, with a delighted smile. “The woman that lived
here befo’ had a past, honey. A man named Huggins
lived in this house, an’ she said she’s his wife. Wife!
Lawsey! No man has a wife like that! She had a past,
that woman, an’ mebbe a present, too—he, he, he!</p>
<p>“He was the man what put the railroad through here,
honey. I done hear the woman say—her name was
Blanche, honey—that Huggins was one of them ultra
rich. But whatever it was that ailed him, honey, didn’t
help his looks none. Pig-eye, I used to call him, when
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_65'></SPAN>65</span>
I’se mad at him—which was mostly all the time—he,
he, he!”</p>
<p>The girl’s face whitened. Was she never to escape the
atmosphere she loathed? She shuddered and Martha
patted her sympathetically on the shoulder.</p>
<p>“There, there, honey; you ain’t ’sponsible for other
folks’ affairs. Jes’ you hold you’ head up an’ go about
you’ business. Nobody say anything to you because you’
livin’ here.”</p>
<p>But Martha’s words neither comforted nor consoled
the girl. She went again to her room and sat for a long
time, looking out of a window. For now all the cheer
had gone out of the house; the rooms looked dull and
dreary—and empty, as of something gone out of them.</p>
<h2><span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_66'></SPAN>66</span><SPAN name='chVIII' id='chVIII'></SPAN>CHAPTER VIII—CONCERNING “SQUINT”</h2>
<p>Marion Harlan had responded eagerly to Carrington’s
fabrication regarding the rumor of
Lawrence Harlan’s presence in Dawes. Carrington’s reference
to her father’s sojourn in the town had been vague—he
merely told her that a rumor had reached him—a
man’s word, without details—and she had accepted it
at its face value. She was impatient to run the rumor
down, to personally satisfy herself, and she believed
Carrington.</p>
<p>But she spent a fruitless week interrogating people in
Dawes. She had gone to the courthouse, there to pass
long hours searching the records—and had found nothing.
Then, systematically, she had gone from store to
store—making small purchases and quizzing everyone
she came in contact with. None had known a man named
Harlan; it seemed that not one person in Dawes had
ever heard of him.</p>
<p>Parsons had returned to town in the buckboard shortly
after noon on the day of their arrival at the new house,
and she had not seen him again until the following morning.
Then he had told her that Carrington had gone
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_67'></SPAN>67</span>
away—he did not know where. Carrington would not
return for a week or two, he inferred.</p>
<p>Parsons had bought some horses. A little bay, short-coupled
but wiry, belonged to her, Parsons said—it was
a present from Carrington.</p>
<p>She hesitated to accept the horse; but the little animal
won her regard by his affectionate mannerisms, and at
the end of a day of doubt and indecision she accepted him.</p>
<p>She had ridden horses in Westwood—bareback when
no one had been looking, and with a side-saddle at other
times—but she discovered no side-saddle in Dawes.
However, she did encounter no difficulty in unearthing a
riding-habit with a divided skirt, and though she got into
that with a pulse of trepidation and embarrassment, she
soon discovered it to be most comfortable and convenient.</p>
<p>And Dawes did not stare at her because she rode
“straddle.” At first she was fearful, and watched
Dawes’s citizens furtively; but when she saw that she
attracted no attention other than would be attracted by
any good-looking young woman in more conventional
attire, she felt more at ease. But she could not help
thinking about the sanctimonious inhabitants of Westwood.
Would they not have declared their kindly predictions
vindicated had they been permitted to see her?
She could almost hear the chorus of “I-told-you-so’s”—they
rang in her ears over a distance of many hundreds
of miles!
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_68'></SPAN>68</span></p>
<p>But the spirit of the young, unfettered country had
got into her soul, and she went her way unmindful of
Westwood’s opinions.</p>
<p>For three days she continued her search for tidings of
her father, eager and hopeful; and then for the remainder
of the week she did her searching mechanically, doggedly,
with a presentiment of failure to harass her.</p>
<p>And then one morning, when she was standing beside
her horse near the stable door, ready to mount and fully
determined to pursue the Carrington rumor to the end,
the word she sought was brought to her.</p>
<p>She saw a horseman coming toward her from the
direction of Dawes. He was not Parsons—for the rider
was short and broad; and besides, Parsons was spending
most of his time in Dawes.</p>
<p>The girl watched the rider, assured, as he came nearer,
that he was a stranger; and when he turned his horse
toward her, and she saw he <em>was</em> a stranger, she leaned
close and whispered to her own animal:</p>
<p>“Oh, Billy; what if it <em>should</em> be!”</p>
<p>An instant later she was watching the stranger dismount
within a few feet of where she was standing.</p>
<p>He was short and stocky, and undeniably Irish. He
was far past middle age, as his gray hair and seamed
wrinkles of his face indicated; but there was the light of
a youthful spirit and good-nature in his eyes that squinted
at the girl with a quizzical interest.
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_69'></SPAN>69</span></p>
<p>With the bridle-rein in the crook of his elbow and his
hat in his hand, he bowed elaborately to the girl.</p>
<p>“Would ye be Miss Harlan, ma’am?” he asked.</p>
<p>“Yes,” she breathed, her face alight with eagerness,
for now since the man had spoken her name the presentiment
of news grew stronger.</p>
<p>The man’s face flashed into a wide, delighted grin and
he reached out a hand, into which she placed one of hers,
hardly knowing that she did it.</p>
<p>“Me name’s Ben Mullarky, ma’am. I’ve got a little
shack down on the Rabbit-Ear—which is a crick, for all
the name some locoed ignoramus give it. You c’ud see
the shack from here, ma’am—if ye’d look sharp.”</p>
<p>He pointed out a spot to her—a wooded section far
out in the big level country southward, beside the river—and
she saw the roof of a building near the edge of
the timber.</p>
<p>“That’s me shack,” offered Mullarky. “Me ol’ woman
an’ meself owns her—an’ a quarter-section—all proved.
We call it seven miles from the shack to Dawes. That’d
make it about three from here.”</p>
<p>“Yes, yes,” said the girl eagerly.</p>
<p>He grinned at her. “Comin’ in to town this mornin’
for some knickknacks for me ol’ woman, I hear from
Coleman—who keeps a store—that there’s a fine-lookin’
girl named Harlan searchin’ the country for news of her
father, Larry Harlan. I knowed him, ma’am.”
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_70'></SPAN>70</span></p>
<p>“You did? Oh, how wonderful!” She stood erect,
breathing fast, her eyes glowing with mingled joy and
impatience. She had not caught the significance of Mullarky’s
picturesque past tense, “knowed;” but when he
repeated it, with just a slight emphasis:</p>
<p>“I <em>knowed</em> him, ma’am,” she drew a quick, full breath
and her face whitened.</p>
<p>“You knew him,” she said slowly. “Does that
mean——”</p>
<p>Mullarky scratched his head and looked downward, not
meeting her eyes.</p>
<p>“Squint Taylor would tell you the story, ma’am,” he
said. “You see, ma’am, he worked for Squint, an’ Squint
was with him when it happened.”</p>
<p>“He’s dead, then?” She stood rigid, tense, searching
Mullarky’s face with wide, dreading eyes, and when she
saw his gaze shift under hers she drew a deep sigh and
leaned against Billy, covering her face with her hands.</p>
<p>Mullarky did not attempt to disturb her; he stood,
looking glumly at her, reproaching himself for his awkwardness
in breaking the news to her.</p>
<p>It was some minutes before she faced him again, and
then she was pale and composed, except for the haunting
sadness that had come into her eyes.</p>
<p>“Thank you,” she said. “Can you tell me where I can
find Mr. Taylor—‘Squint,’ you called him? Is that the
Taylor who was elected mayor—last week?”
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_71'></SPAN>71</span></p>
<p>“The same, ma’am.” He turned and pointed southward,
into the big, level country that she admired so
much.</p>
<p>“Do you see that big timber grove ’way off there—where
the crick doubles to the north—with that big green
patch beyond?” She nodded. “That’s Taylor’s ranch—the
Arrow. You’ll find him there. He’s a mighty fine
man, ma’am. Larry Harlan would tell you that if he was
here. Taylor was the best friend that Larry Harlan ever
had—out here.” He looked at her pityingly. “I’m
sorry, ma’am, to be the bearer of ill news; but when I
heard you was in town, lookin’ for your father, I couldn’t
help comin’ to see you.”</p>
<p>She asked some questions about her father—which
Mullarky answered; though he could tell her nothing that
would acquaint her with the details of her father’s life
between the time he had left Westwood and the day of
his appearance in this section of the world.</p>
<p>“Mebbe Taylor will know, ma’am,” he repeated again
and again. And then, when she thanked him once more
and mounted her horse, he said:</p>
<p>“You’ll be goin’ to see Squint right away, ma’am, I
suppose. You can ease your horse right down the slope,
here, an’ strike the level. You’ll find a trail right down
there. You’ll follow it along the crick, an’ it’ll take you
into the Arrow ranchhouse. It’ll take you past me own
shack, too; an’ if you’ll stop in an’ tell the ol’ woman who
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_72'></SPAN>72</span>
you are, she’ll be tickled to give you a snack an’ a cup of
tea. She liked Larry herself.”</p>
<p>The girl watched Mullarky ride away. He turned in
the saddle, at intervals, to grin at her.</p>
<p>Then, when Mullarky had gone she leaned against
Billy and stood for a long time, her shoulders quivering.</p>
<p>At last, though, she mounted the little animal and sent
him down the slope.</p>
<p>She found the trail about which Mullarky had spoken,
and rode it steadily; though she saw little of the wild,
virgin country through which she passed, because her
brimming eyes blurred it all.</p>
<p>She came at last to Mullarky’s shack, and a stout, motherly
woman, with an ample bosom and a kindly face,
welcomed her.</p>
<p>“So you’re Larry Harlan’s daughter,” said Mrs. Mullarky,
when her insistence had brought the girl inside the
cabin; “you poor darlin’. An’ Ben told you—the blunderin’
idiot. He’ll have a piece of my mind when he
comes back! An’ you’re stoppin’ at the old Huggins
house, eh?” She looked sharply at the girl, and the
latter’s face reddened. Whereat Mrs. Mullarky patted
her shoulder and murmured:</p>
<p>“It ain’t your fault that there’s indacint women in
the world; an’ no taint of them will ever reach you. But
the fools in this world is always waggin’ their tongues,
associatin’ what’s happened with what they think will
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_73'></SPAN>73</span>
happen. An’ mebbe they’ll wonder about you. It’s your
uncle that’s there with you, you say? Well, then, don’t
you worry. You run right along to see Squint Taylor,
now, an’ find out what he knows about your father.
Taylor’s a mighty fine man, darlin’.”</p>
<p>And so Marion went on her way again, grateful for
Mrs. Mullarky’s kindness, but depressed over the knowledge
that the atmosphere of suspicion, which had enveloped
her in Westwood, had followed her into this new
country which, she had hoped, would have been more
friendly.</p>
<p>She came in sight of the Arrow ranchhouse presently,
and gazed at it admiringly. It was a big building, of
adobe brick, with a wide porch—or gallery—entirely
surrounding it. It was in the center of a big space, with
timber flanking it on three sides, and at the north was a
green stretch of level that reached to the sloping banks of
a river.</p>
<p>There were several smaller buildings; a big, fenced enclosure—the
corrals, she supposed; a pasture, and a
garden. Everything was in perfect order, and had it not
been for the aroma of the sage that assailed her nostrils,
the awe-inspiring bigness of it all, the sight of thousands
of cattle—which she could see through the trees beyond
the clearing, she could have likened the place to a big
eastern farmhouse of the better class, isolated and prosperous.
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_74'></SPAN>74</span></p>
<p>She dismounted from her horse at a corner of the
house, near a door that opened upon the wide porch, and
stood, pale and hesitant, looking at the door, which was
closed.</p>
<p>And as she stared at the door, it swung inward and
Quinton Taylor appeared in the opening.</p>
<h2><span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_75'></SPAN>75</span><SPAN name='chIX' id='chIX'></SPAN>CHAPTER IX—A MAN LIES</h2>
<p>Taylor was arrayed as Marion had mentally pictured
him that day when, in the Pullman, she had
associated him with ranches and ranges. Evidently he
was ready to ride, for leather chaps incased his legs. The
chaps were plain, not even adorned with the spangles of
the drawings she had seen; and they were well-worn
and shiny in spots. A pair of big, Mexican spurs were
on the heels of his boots; the inevitable cartridge-belt
about his middle, sagging with the heavy pistol;
a quirt dangled from his left hand. Assuredly he
belonged in this environment—he even seemed to dominate
it.</p>
<p>She had wondered how he would greet her; but his
greeting was not at all what she had feared it would be.
For he did not presume upon their meeting on the train;
he gave no sign that he had ever seen her before; there
was not even a glint in his eyes to tell her that he remembered
the scornful look she had given him when she discovered
him listening to the conversation carried on between
her uncle and Carrington. His manner indicated
that if <em>she</em> did not care to mention the matter <em>he</em> would
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_76'></SPAN>76</span>
not. His face was grave as he stepped across the porch
and stood before her. And he said merely:</p>
<p>“Are you looking for someone, ma’am?”</p>
<p>“I came to see you, Mr. Taylor,” she said. (And then
he knew that the negro porter on the train had not lied
when he said the girl had paid him for certain information.)</p>
<p>But Taylor’s face was still grave, for he thought he
knew what she had come for. He had overheard a great
deal of the conversation between Parsons and Carrington
in the dining-car, and he remembered such phrases as:
“That fairy tale about her father having been seen in
this locality; To get her out here, where there isn’t a
hell of a lot of law, and a man’s will is the only thing that
governs him;” and, “Then you lied about Lawrence
Harlan having been seen in this country.” Also, he remembered
distinctly another phrase, uttered by Carrington:
“That you framed up on her mother, to get her to
leave Larry.”</p>
<p>All of that conversation was vivid in Taylor’s mind,
and mingled with the recollection of it now was a grim
pity for the girl, for the hypocritical character of her
supposed friends.</p>
<p>To be sure, the girl did not know that Parsons had
lied about her father having been seen in the vicinity of
Dawes; but that did not alter the fact that Larry Harlan
had really been here; and Taylor surmised that she had
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_77'></SPAN>77</span>
made inquiries, thus discovering that there was truth in
Carrington’s statement.</p>
<p>He got a chair for her and seated himself on the porch
railing.</p>
<p>“You came to see me?” he said, encouragingly.</p>
<p>“I am Marion Harlan, the daughter of Lawrence
Harlan,” began the girl. And then she paused to note the
effect of her words on Taylor.</p>
<p>So far as she could see, there was no sign of emotion
on Taylor’s face. He nodded, looking steadily at her.</p>
<p>“And you are seeking news of your father,” he said.
“Who told you to come to me?”</p>
<p>“A man named Ben Mullarky. He said my father
had worked for you—that you had been his best friend.”</p>
<p>She saw his lips come together in straight lines.</p>
<p>“Poor Larry. You knew he died, Miss Harlan?”</p>
<p>“Mullarky told me.” The girl’s eyes moistened. “And
I should like to know something about him—how he
lived after—after he left home; whether he was happy—all
about him. You see, Mr. Taylor, I loved him!”</p>
<p>“And Larry Harlan loved his daughter,” said Taylor
softly.</p>
<p>He began to tell her of her father; how several years
before Harlan had come to him, seeking employment;
how Larry and himself had formed a friendship; how
they had gone together in search of the gold that Larry
claimed to have discovered in the Sangre de Christo
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_78'></SPAN>78</span>
Mountains; of the injury Larry had suffered, and how
the man had died while he himself had been taking him
toward civilization and assistance.</p>
<p>During the recital, however, one thought dominated
him, reddening his face with visible evidence of the sense
of guilt that had seized him. He must deliberately lie to
the daughter of the man who had been his friend.</p>
<p>In his pocket at this instant was Larry’s note to him,
in which the man had expressed his fear of fortune-hunters.
Taylor remembered the exact words:</p>
<p style='margin-left: 2em;margin-right: 2em;'>
Marion will have considerable money and I don’t want no
sneak to get hold of it—like the sneak that got hold of the
money my wife had, that I saved. There’s a lot of them
around. If Marion is going to fall in with one of that kind,
I’d rather she wouldn’t get what I leave; the man would get
it away from her. Use your own judgment and I’ll be
satisfied.</p>
<p>And Taylor’s judgment was that Carrington and Parsons
were fortune-hunters; that if they discovered the
girl to be entitled to a share of the money that had been
received from the sale of the mine, they would endeavor
to convert it to their own use. And Taylor was determined
they should not have it.</p>
<p>The conversation he had overheard in the dining-car
had convinced him of their utter hypocrisy and selfishness;
it had aroused in him a feeling of savage resentment
and disgust that would not permit him to transfer
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_79'></SPAN>79</span>
a cent of the money to the girl as long as they held the
slightest influence over her.</p>
<p>Again he mentally quoted from Larry’s note to him:</p>
<p style='margin-left: 2em;margin-right: 2em;'>
The others were too selfish and sneaking. (That meant
Parsons—and one other.) Squint, I want you to take
care of her.... Sell—the mine—take my share
and for it give Marion a half-interest in your ranch, the
Arrow. If there is any left, put it in land in Dawes—that
town is going to boom. Guard it for her, and marry
her, Squint; she’ll make you a good wife.</p>
<p>Since the first meeting with the girl on the train Taylor
had felt an entire sympathy with Larry Harlan in his expressed
desire to have Taylor marry the girl; in fact, she
was the first girl that Taylor had ever wanted to marry,
and the passion in his heart for her had already passed
the wistful stage—he was determined to have her. But
that passion did not lessen his sense of obligation to Larry
Harlan. Nor would it—if he could not have the girl
himself—prevent him doing what he could to keep her
from forming any sort of an alliance with the sort of
man Larry had wished to save her from, as expressed
in this passage of the note: “If Marion is going to fall
in with one of that kind, I’d rather she wouldn’t get what
I leave.”</p>
<p>Therefore, since Taylor distrusted Carrington and
Parsons, he had decided he would not tell the girl of the
money her father had left—the share of the proceeds of
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_80'></SPAN>80</span>
the mine. He would hold it for her, as a sacred trust,
until the time came—if it ever came—when she would
have discovered their faithlessness—or until she needed
the money. More, he was determined to expose the men.</p>
<p>He knew, thanks to his eavesdropping on the train, at
least something regarding the motives that had brought
them to Dawes; Carrington’s words, “When we get hold
of the reins,” had convinced him that they and the interests
behind them were to endeavor to rob the people of
Dawes. That was indicated by their attempt to have
David Danforth elected mayor of the town.</p>
<p>Taylor had already decided that he could not permit
Marion to see the note her father had left, for he did not
want her to feel that she was under any obligation—parental
or otherwise—to marry him. If he won her
at all, he wanted to win her on his merits.</p>
<p>As a matter of fact, since he had decided to lie about
the money, he was determined to say nothing about the
note at all. He would keep silent, making whatever explanations
that seemed to be necessary, trusting to time
and the logical sequence of events for the desired outcome.</p>
<p>He was forced to begin to lie at once. When he had
finished the story of Larry’s untimely death, the girl
looked straight at him.</p>
<p>“Then you were with him when he died. Did—did
he mention anyone—my mother—or me?”</p>
<p>“He said: ‘Squint, there is a daughter’”—Taylor
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_81'></SPAN>81</span>
was quoting from the note—“‘she was fifteen when I
saw her last. She looked just like me—thank God for
that!’” Taylor blushed when he saw the girl’s face
redden, for he knew what her thoughts were. He should
not have quoted that sentence. He resolved to be more
careful; and went on: “He told me I was to take care of
you, to offer you a home at the Arrow—after I found
you. I was to go to Westwood, Illinois, to find you. I
suppose he wanted me to bring you here.”</p>
<p>The speech was entirely unworthy, and Taylor knew it,
and he eased his conscience by adding: “He thought, I
suppose, that you would like to be where he had been.
I’ve not touched the room he had. All his effects are
there—everything he owned, just as he left them. I
had given him a room in the house because I liked him
(that was the truth), and I wanted him where I could
talk to him.”</p>
<p>“I cannot thank you enough for that!” she said earnestly.
And then Taylor was forced to lie again, for she
immediately asked: “And the mine? It proved to be
worthless, I suppose. For,” she added, “that would be
just father’s luck.”</p>
<p>“The mine wasn’t what we thought it would be,” said
Taylor. He was looking at his boots when he spoke, and
he wondered if his face was as red as it felt.</p>
<p>“I am not surprised.” There was no disappointment
in her voice, and therefore Taylor knew she was not
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_82'></SPAN>82</span>
avaricious—though he knew he had not expected her to be.
“Then he left nothing but his personal belongings?” she
added.</p>
<p>Taylor nodded.</p>
<p>The girl sat for a long time, looking out over the river
into the vast level that stretched away from it.</p>
<p>“He has ridden there, I suppose,” she said wistfully.
“He was here for nearly three years, you said. Then
he must have been everywhere around here.” And she
got up, gazing about her, as though she would firmly fix
the locality for future reminiscent dreams. Then suddenly
she said:</p>
<p>“I should like to see his room—may I?”</p>
<p>“You sure can!”</p>
<p>She followed him into the house, and he stood in the
open doorway, watching her as she went from place to
place, looking at Larry’s effects.</p>
<p>Taylor did not remain long at the door; he went out
upon the porch again, leaving her in the room, and after
a long time she joined him, her eyes moist, but a smile
on her lips.</p>
<p>“You’ll leave his things there—a little longer, won’t
you? I should like to have them, and I shall come for
them, some day.”</p>
<p>“Sure,” he said. “But, look here, Miss Harlan. Why
should you take his things? Leave them here—and come
yourself. That room is yours, if you say the word.
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_83'></SPAN>83</span>
And a half-interest in the ranch. I was going to offer
your father an interest in it—if he had lived——”</p>
<p>He realized his mistake when he saw her eyes widen
incredulously. And there was a change in her voice—it
was full of doubt, of distrust almost.</p>
<p>“What had father done to deserve an interest in your
ranch?” she demanded.</p>
<p>“Why,” he answered hesitatingly, “it’s rather hard to
say. But he helped me much; he suggested improvements
that made the place more valuable; he was a good man,
and he took a great deal of the work off my mind—and
I liked him,” he finished lamely.</p>
<p>“And do you think I could do his share of the work?”
she interrogated, looking at him with an odd smile, the
meaning of which Taylor could not fathom.</p>
<p>“I couldn’t expect that, of course,” he said boldly;
“but I owe Harlan something for what he did for me,
and I thought——”</p>
<p>“You thought you would be charitable to the daughter,”
she finished for him, with a smile in which there was
gratitude and understanding.</p>
<p>“I am sure I can’t thank you enough for feeling that
way toward my father and myself. But I can’t accept,
you know.”</p>
<p>Taylor did know, of course. A desperate desire to
make amends for his lying, to force upon her gratuitously
what he had illegally robbed her of, had been the motive
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_84'></SPAN>84</span>
underlying his offer. And he would have been disappointed
had she accepted, for that would have revealed
a lack of spirit which he had hoped she possessed.</p>
<p>And yet Taylor felt decidedly uncomfortable over the
refusal. He wanted her to have what belonged to her,
for he divined from the note her father had left that
she would have need of it.</p>
<p>He discovered by judicious questioning, by inference,
and through crafty suggestion, that she was entirely dependent
upon her uncle; that her uncle had bought the
Huggins house, and that Carrington had made her a
present of the horse she rode.</p>
<p>This last bit of information, volunteered by Marion,
provoked Taylor to a rage that made him grit his teeth.</p>
<p>A little while longer they talked, and when the girl
mounted her horse to ride away, they had entered into
an agreement under which on Tuesdays and Fridays—the
first Tuesday falling on the following day—Taylor
was to be absent from the ranch. And during his absence
the girl was to come and stay at the ranchhouse, there to
occupy her father’s room and, if she desired, to enter
the other rooms at will.</p>
<p>As a concession to propriety, she was to bring Martha,
the Huggins housekeeper, with her.</p>
<p>But Taylor, after the girl had left, stood for an hour
on the porch, watching the dust-cloud that followed the
girl’s progress through the big basin, his face red, his
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_85'></SPAN>85</span>
soul filled with loathing for the part his judgment was
forcing him to play. But arrayed against the loathing
was a complacent satisfaction aroused over the thought
that Carrington would never get the money that Larry
Harlan had left to the girl.</p>
<h2><span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_86'></SPAN>86</span><SPAN name='chX' id='chX'></SPAN>CHAPTER X—THE FRAME-UP</h2>
<p>James J. Carrington was unscrupulous, but
even his most devout enemy could not have said that
he lacked vision and thoroughness. And, while he had
been listening to Danforth in his apartment in the Castle
Hotel, he had discovered that Neil Norton had made a
technical blunder in electing Quinton Taylor mayor of
Dawes. Perhaps that was why Carrington had not
seemed to be very greatly disturbed over the knowledge
that Danforth had been defeated; certainly it was why
Carrington had taken the first train to the capital.</p>
<p>Carrington was tingling with elation when he reached
the capital; but on making inquiries he found that the
governor had left the city the day before, and that he
was not expected to return for several days.</p>
<p>Carrington passed the interval renewing some acquaintances,
and fuming with impatience in the barroom, the
billiard-room, and the lobby of his hotel.</p>
<p>But he was the first visitor admitted to the governor’s
office when the latter returned.</p>
<p>The governor was a big man, flaccid and portly, and
he received Carrington with a big Stetson set rakishly on
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_87'></SPAN>87</span>
the back of his head and an enormous black cigar in his
mouth. That he was not a statesman but a professional
politician was quite as apparent from his appearance as
was his huge, welcoming smile, a certain indication that
he was on terms of intimate friendship with Carrington.
Formerly an eastern political worker, and a power in the
councils of his party, his appointment as governor of the
Territory had come, not because of his ability to fill the
position, but as a reward for the delivery of certain votes
which had helped to make his party successful at the
polls. He would be the last carpetbag governor of the
Territory, for the Territory had at last been admitted
to the Union; the new Legislature was even then in session;
charters were already being issued to municipalities
that desired self-government—and the governor, soon to
quit his position as temporary chief, had no real interest
in the new régime, and no desire to aid in eliminating the
inevitable confusion.</p>
<p>“Take a seat, Jim,” he invited, “and have a cigar.
My secretary tells me you’ve been buzzing around here
like a bee lost from the hive, for the past week.” He
grinned hugely at Carrington, poking the latter playfully
in the ribs as Carrington essayed to light the cigar that
had been given him.</p>
<p>“Worried about that man Taylor, in Dawes, eh?” he
went on, as Carrington smoked. “Well, it <em>was</em> too bad
that Danforth didn’t trim him, wasn’t it? But”—and
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_88'></SPAN>88</span>
his eyes narrowed—“I’m still governor, and Taylor isn’t
mayor yet—and never will be!”</p>
<p>Carrington smiled. “You saw the mistake, too,
eh?”</p>
<p>“Saw it!” boomed the governor. “I’ve been watching
that town as a cat watches a mouse. Itching for the
clean-up, Jim,” he whispered. “Why, I’ve got the papers
all made out—ousting him and appointing Danforth
mayor. Right here they are.” He reached into a pigeon-hole
and drew out some legal papers. “You can serve
them yourself. Just hand them to Judge Littlefield—he’ll
do the rest. It’s likely—if Taylor starts a fuss,
that you’ll have to help Littlefield handle the case—arranging
for deputies, and such. If you need any more
help, just wire me. I don’t pack my carpetbag for a year
yet, and we can do a lot of work in that time.”</p>
<p>Carrington and the governor talked for an hour or
more, and when Carrington left for the office he was
grinning with pleasurable anticipation. For a municipality,
already sovereign according to the laws of the
people, had been delivered into his hands.</p>
<p>Just at dusk on Tuesday evening Carrington alighted
from the train at Dawes. He went to his rooms in the
Castle, removed the stains of travel, descended the stairs
to the dining-room, and ate heartily; then, stopping at
the cigar-counter to light a cigar, he inquired of the clerk
where he could find Judge Littlefield.
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_89'></SPAN>89</span></p>
<p>“He’s got a house right next to the courthouse—on
your left, from here,” the clerk told him.</p>
<p>A few minutes later Carrington was seated opposite
Judge Littlefield, with a table between them, in the front
room of the judge’s residence.</p>
<p>“My name is Carrington—James J.,” was Carrington’s
introduction of himself. “I have just left the governor,
and he gave me these, to hand over to you.” He
shoved over the papers the governor had given him, smiling
slightly at the other.</p>
<p>The judge answered the smile with a beaming smirk.</p>
<p>“I’ve heard of you,” he said; “the governor has often
spoken of you.” He glanced hastily over the papers, and
his smirk widened. “The good people of Dawes will be
rather shocked over this decision, I suppose. But laymen
<em>will</em> confuse things—won’t they? Now, if Norton
and his friends had come to <em>me</em> before they decided to
enter Taylor’s name, this thing would not have happened.”</p>
<p>“I’m glad it <em>did</em> happen,” laughed Carrington. “The
chances are that even Norton would have beaten Danforth,
and then the governor could not have interfered.”</p>
<p>Carrington’s gaze became grim as he looked at the
judge. “You are prepared to go the limit in this case,
I suppose?” he interrogated. “There is a chance that
Taylor and his friends will attempt to make trouble. But
any trouble is to be handled firmly, you understand.
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_90'></SPAN>90</span>
There is to be no monkey business. If they accept the
law’s mandates, as all law-abiding citizens should accept
it, all well and good. And if they don’t—and they want
trouble, we’ll give them that! Understand?”</p>
<p>“Perfectly,” smiled the judge. “The law is not to be
assailed.”</p>
<p>Smilingly he bowed Carrington out.</p>
<p>Carrington took a turn down the street, walking until
his cigar burned itself out; then he entered the hotel and
sat for a time in the lobby. Then he went to bed, satisfied
that he had done a good week’s work, and conscious that
he had launched a heavy blow at the man for whom he
had conceived a great and bitter hatred.</p>
<h2><span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_91'></SPAN>91</span><SPAN name='chXI' id='chXI'></SPAN>CHAPTER XI—“NO FUN FOOLING HER”</h2>
<p>Accompanied by Martha, who rode one of the
horses Parsons had bought, Marion Harlan began
her trip to the Arrow shortly after dawn.</p>
<p>The girl had said nothing to Parsons regarding her
meeting with Taylor the previous day, nor of her intention
to pass the day at the Arrow. For she feared that
Parsons might make some objection—and she wanted
to go.</p>
<p>That she feared her uncle’s deterrent influence argued
that she was aware that she was doing wrong in going
to the Arrow—even with Martha as chaperon; but that
was, perhaps, the very reason the thought of going
engaged her interest.</p>
<p>She wondered many times, as she rode, with the negro
woman trailing her, if there was not inherent in her some
of those undesirable traits concerning which the good
people of Westwood had entertained fears.</p>
<p>The thought crimsoned her cheeks and brightened her
eyes; but she knew she had no vicious thoughts—that
she was going to the Arrow, not because she wanted to
see Taylor again, but because she wanted to sit in the
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_92'></SPAN>92</span>
room that had been occupied by her father. She wanted
to look again at his belongings, to feel his former presence—as
she had felt it while gazing out over the vast level
beyond the river, where he had ridden many times.</p>
<p>She looked in on Mrs. Mullarky as they passed the
Mullarky cabin, and when the good woman learned of
her proposed visit to the Arrow, she gave her entire
approval.</p>
<p>“I don’t blame you, darlin’,” declared Mrs. Mullarky.
“Let the world jabber—if it wants to. If it was me
father that had been over there, I’d stay there, takin’
Squint Taylor at his word—an’ divvle a bit I’d care
what the world would say about it!”</p>
<p>So Marion rode on, slightly relieved. But the crimson
stain was still on her cheeks when she and Martha dismounted
at the porch, and she looked fearfully around,
half-expecting that Taylor would appear from somewhere,
having tricked her.</p>
<p>But Taylor was nowhere in sight. A fat man appeared
from somewhere in the vicinity of the stable,
doffed his hat politely, informed her that he was the
“stable boss” and would care for the horses; he having
been delegated by Taylor to perform whatever service
Miss Harlan desired; and ambled off, leading the horses,
leaving the girl and Martha standing near the edge of
the porch.</p>
<p>Marion entered the house with a strange feeling of
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_93'></SPAN>93</span>
guilt and shame. Standing in the open doorway—where
she had seen Taylor standing when she had dismounted
the day before—she was afflicted with regret and mortification
over her coming. It wasn’t right for a girl to
do as she was doing; and for an instant she hesitated on
the verge of flight.</p>
<p>But Martha’s voice directly behind her, reassured her.</p>
<p>“They ain’t a soul here, honey—not a soul. You’ve
got the whole house to yo’self. This am a lark—shuah
enough. He, he, he!”</p>
<p>It was the voice of the temptress—and Marion heeded
it. With a defiant toss of her head she entered the room,
took off her hat, laid it on a convenient table, calmly
telling Martha to do the same. Then she went boldly
from one room to another, finally coming to a halt in
the doorway of the room that had been occupied by her
father.</p>
<p>For her that room seemed to hallow the place. It was
as though her father were here with her; as though there
were no need of Martha being here with her. The
thought of it removed any stigma that might have been
attached to her coming; it made her heedless of the
opinion of the world and its gossip-mongers.</p>
<p>She forgot the world in her interest, and for more
than an hour, with Martha sitting in a chair sympathetically
watching her, she reveled in the visible proofs of
her father’s occupancy of the room.
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_94'></SPAN>94</span></p>
<p>Later she and Martha went out on the porch, where,
seated in rocking-chairs—that had not been on the porch
the day before—she filled her mental vision with pictures
of her father’s life at the Arrow. Those pictures
were imaginary, but they were intensely satisfying to the
girl who had loved her father, for she could almost see
him moving about her.</p>
<p>“You shuah does look soft an’ dreamy, honey,” Martha
told her once. “You looks jes’ like a delicate ghost. A
while ago, lookin’ at you, I shuah was scared you was
goin’ to blow away!”</p>
<p>But Marion was not the ethereal wraith that Martha
thought her. She proved that a little later, when, with
the negro woman abetting her, she went into the house
and prepared dinner. For she ate so heartily that Martha
was forced to amend her former statement.</p>
<p>“For a ghost you shuah does eat plenty, honey,” she
said.</p>
<p>Later they were out on the porch again. The big level
on the other side of the river was flooded with a slumberous
sunshine, with the glowing, rose haze of early
afternoon enveloping it, and the girl was enjoying it
when there came an interruption.</p>
<p>A cowboy emerged from a building down near the
corral—Marion learned later that the building was
the bunkhouse, which meant that it was used as sleeping-quarters
for the Arrow outfit—and walked, with
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_95'></SPAN>95</span>
the rolling stride so peculiar to his kind, toward the
porch.</p>
<p>He was a tall young man, red of face, and just now
affected with a mighty embarrassment, which was revealed
in the awkward manner in which he removed his
hat and shuffled his feet as he came to a halt within a
few feet of Marion.</p>
<p>“The boss wants to know how you are gettin’ along,
ma’am, an’ if there’s anything you’re wantin’?”</p>
<p>“We are enjoying ourselves immensely, thank you;
and there is nothing we want—particularly.”</p>
<p>The puncher had turned to go before the girl thought
of the significance of the “boss.”</p>
<p>Her face was a trifle pale as she called to the puncher.</p>
<p>“Who is your boss—if you please?” she asked.</p>
<p>The puncher wheeled, a slow grin on his face.</p>
<p>“Why, Squint Taylor, ma’am.”</p>
<p>She sat erect. “Do you mean that Mr. Taylor is
here?”</p>
<p>“He’s in the bunkhouse, ma’am.”</p>
<p>She got up, and, holding her head very erect, began
to walk toward the room in which she had left her hat.</p>
<p>But half-way across the porch the puncher’s voice
halted her:</p>
<p>“Squint was sayin’ you didn’t expect him to be here,
an’ that I’d have to do the explainin’. He couldn’t come,
you see.”
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_96'></SPAN>96</span></p>
<p>“Ashamed, I suppose,” she said coldly.</p>
<p>She was facing the puncher now, and she saw him grin.</p>
<p>“Why, no, ma’am; I don’t reckon he’s a heap ashamed.
But it’d be mighty inconvenient for him. You see, ma’am,
this mornin’, when he was gittin’ ready to ride to the
south line, his cayuse got an ornery streak an’ throwed
him, sprainin’ Squint’s ankle.”</p>
<p>The girl’s emotions suddenly reacted; the resentment
she had yielded to became self-reproach. For she had
judged hastily, and she had always felt that one had no
right to judge hastily.</p>
<p>And Taylor had been remarkably considerate; for he
had not even permitted her to know of the accident until
after noon. That indicated that he had no intention of
forcing himself on her.</p>
<p>She hesitated, saw Martha grinning into a hand, looked
at the puncher’s expressionless face, and felt that she had
been rather prudish. Her cheeks flushed with color.</p>
<p>Taylor had actually been a martyr on a small scale in
confining himself to the bunkhouse, when he could have
enjoyed the comforts and spaciousness of the ranchhouse
if it had not been for her own presence.</p>
<p>“Is—is his ankle badly sprained?” she hesitatingly
asked the now sober-faced puncher.</p>
<p>“Kind of bad, ma’am; he ain’t been able to do no
walkin’ on it. Been hobblin’ an’ swearin’, mostly, ma’am.
It’s sure a trial to be near him.”
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_97'></SPAN>97</span></p>
<p>“And it is warm here; it must be terribly hot in that
little place!”</p>
<p>She was at the edge of the porch now, her face radiating
sympathy.</p>
<p>“I am not surprised that he should swear!” she told
the puncher, who grinned and muttered:</p>
<p>“He’s sure first class at it, ma’am.”</p>
<p>“Why,” she said, paying no attention to the puncher’s
compliment of his employer, “he is hurt, and I have been
depriving him of his house. You tell him to come right
out of that stuffy place! Help him to come here!”</p>
<p>And without waiting to watch the puncher depart, she
darted into the house, pulled a big rocker out on the
porch, got a pillow and arranged it so that it would form
a resting-place for the injured man’s head—providing
he decided to occupy the chair, which she doubted—and
then stood on the edge of the porch, awaiting his
appearance.</p>
<p>Inside the bunkhouse the puncher was grinning at
Taylor, who, with his right foot swathed in bandages,
was sitting on a bench, anxiously awaiting the delivery of
the puncher’s message.</p>
<p>“Well, talk, you damned grinning inquisitor!” was
Taylor’s greeting to the puncher. “What did she
say?”</p>
<p>“At first she didn’t seem to be a heap overjoyed to
know that you was in this country,” said the other; “but
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_98'></SPAN>98</span>
when she heard you’d been hurt she sort of stampeded,
invitin’ you to come an’ set on the porch with her.”</p>
<p>Taylor got up and started for the door, the bandaged
foot dragging clumsily.</p>
<p>“Shucks,” drawled the puncher; “if you go to <em>runnin’</em>
to her she’ll have suspicions. Accordin’ to my notion,
she expects you to come a hobblin’, same as though your
leg was broke. ‘Help him to come,’ she told me. An’
you’re goin’ that way—you hear me! I’ll bust your
ankle with a club before I’ll have her think I’m a liar!”</p>
<p>“Maybe I <em>was</em> a little eager,” grinned Taylor.</p>
<p>An instant later he stepped out of the bunkhouse door,
leaning heavily on the puncher’s shoulder.</p>
<p>The two made slow progress to the porch; and Taylor’s
ascent to the porch and his final achievement of the
rocking-chair were accomplished slowly, with the assistance
of Miss Harlan.</p>
<p>Then, with a face almost the color of the scarlet
neckerchief he wore, Taylor watched the retreat of the
puncher.</p>
<p>His face became redder when Miss Harlan drew another
rocker close to his and demanded to be told the
story of the accident.</p>
<p>“My own fault,” declared Taylor. “I was in a hurry.
Accidents always happen that way, don’t they? Slipped
trying to swing on my horse, with him running. Missed
the stirrup. Clumsy, wasn’t it?”
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_99'></SPAN>99</span></p>
<p>Eager to keep his word, of course, Marion reasoned.
She had insisted that he be gone when she arrived, and
he had injured himself hurrying.</p>
<p>She watched him as he talked of the accident. And
now for the first time she understood why he had acquired
the nickname Squint.</p>
<p>His eyes were deep-set, though not small. He did not
really squint, for there was plenty of room between the
eyelids—which, by the way, were fringed with lashes
that might have been the envy of any woman; but there
were many little wrinkles at the corners of his eyes, which
spread fanwise toward cheek and brow, and these created
the illusion of squinting.</p>
<p>Also, he had a habit of partially closing his eyes when
looking directly at one; and at such times they held a
twinkling glint that caused one to speculate over their
meaning.</p>
<p>Miss Harlan was certain the twinkle meant humor.
But other persons had been equally sure the twinkle meant
other emotions, or passion. Looking into Taylor’s eyes
in the dining-car, Carrington had decided they were filled
with cold, implacable hostility, with the promise of violence,
to himself. And yet the squint had not been
absent.</p>
<p>Whatever had been expressed in the eyes had been
sufficient to deter Carrington from his announced purpose
to “knock hell out of” their owner.
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_100'></SPAN>100</span></p>
<p>The girl was aware that Taylor was not handsome;
that his attractions were not of a surface character.
Something about him struck deeper than that. A subtle
magnetism gripped her—the magnetism of strength,
moral and mental. In his eyes she could see the signs
of it; in the lines of his jaw and the set of his lips were
suggestions of indomitability and force.</p>
<p>All the visible signs were, however, glossed over with
the deep, slow humor that radiated from him, that glowed
in his eyes.</p>
<p>It all made her conscious of a great similarity between
them; for despite the doubts and suspicions of the people
of Westwood, she had been able to survive—and humor
had been the grace that had saved her from disappointment
and pessimism. Those other traits in Taylor—visible
to one who studied him—she knew for her own;
and her spirits now responded to his.</p>
<p>Her cheeks were glowing as she looked at him, and her
eyes, half veiled by the drooping lashes, were dancing
with mischief.</p>
<p>“You were in that hot bunkhouse all morning,” she
said. “Why didn’t you send word before?”</p>
<p>“You were careful to tell me that you didn’t want me
around when you came.”</p>
<p>There was a gleam of reproach in his eyes.</p>
<p>“But you were injured!”</p>
<p>“Look how things go in the world,”
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_101'></SPAN>101</span>
he invited, narrowing his eyes at her. “It’s almost enough to make a
man let go all holds and just drift along. Maybe a man
would be just as well off.</p>
<p>“Early this morning I knew I had to light out for the
day, and I didn’t want to go any more than a gopher
wants to go into a rattlesnake’s den. But I had to keep
my word. Then Spotted Tail gets notions——”</p>
<p>“Spotted Tail?” she interrupted.</p>
<p>“My horse,” he grinned at her. “He gets notions.
Maybe he wants to get away as much as I want to stay.
Anyhow, he was in a hurry; and things shape up so that
I’ve got to stay.</p>
<p>“And then, when I hang around the bunkhouse all
morning, worrying because I’m afraid you’ll find out that
I didn’t keep my word, and that I’m still here, you send
word that you’ll not object to me coming on the porch
with you. I’d call that a misjudgment all around—on
my part.”</p>
<p>“Yes—it was that,” she told him. “You certainly
are entitled to the comforts of your own house—especially
when you are hurt. But are you sure you <em>worried</em>
because you were afraid I would discover you were
here?”</p>
<p>“I expect you can prove that by looking at me, Miss
Harlan—noticing that I’ve got thin and pale-looking
since you saw me last?”</p>
<p>She threw a demure glance at him. “I am afraid you
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_102'></SPAN>102</span>
are in great danger; you do not look nearly as well as
when I saw you, the first time, on the train.”</p>
<p>He looked gravely at her.</p>
<p>“The porter threw them out of the window,” he said.
“That is, I gave him orders to.”</p>
<p>“What?” she said, perplexed. “I don’t understand.
What did the porter throw out of the window?”</p>
<p>“My dude clothes,” he said.</p>
<p>So he <em>had</em> observed the ridicule in her eyes.</p>
<p>She met his gaze, and both laughed.</p>
<p>He had been curious about her all along, and he artfully
questioned her about Westwood, gradually drawing
from her the rather unexciting details of her life. Yet
these details were chiefly volunteered, Taylor noticed,
and did not result entirely from his questions.</p>
<p>Carrington’s name came into the discussion, also, and
Parsons. Taylor discovered that Carrington and Parsons
had been partners in many business deals, and that
they had come to Dawes because the town offered many
possibilities. The girl quoted Carrington’s words; Taylor
was convinced that she knew nothing of the character of
the business the men had come to Dawes to transact.</p>
<p>Their talk strayed to minor subjects and to those of
great importance, ranging from a discussion of prairie
hens to sage comment upon certain abstruse philosophy.
Always, however, the personal note was dominant and
the personal interest acute.
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_103'></SPAN>103</span></p>
<p>That atmosphere—the deep interest of each for the
other—made their conversation animated. For half the
time the girl paid no attention to Taylor’s words. She
watched him when he talked, noting the various shades
of expression of his eyes, the curve of his lips, wondering
at the deep music of his voice. She marveled that at
first she had thought him uninteresting and plain.</p>
<p>For she had discovered that he was rather good-looking;
that he was endowed with a natural instinct to reach
accurate and logical conclusions; that he was quiet-mannered
and polite—and a gentleman. Her first impressions
of him had not been correct, for during their talk
she discovered through casual remarks, that Taylor had
been educated with some care, that his ancestors were of
that sturdy American stock which had made the settling
of the eastern New-World wilderness possible, and that
there was in his manner the unmistakable gentleness of
good breeding.</p>
<p>However, Taylor’s first impressions of the girl had
endured without amendations. At a glance he had yielded
to the spell of her, and the intimate and informal conversation
carried on between them; the flashes of personality
he caught merely served to convince him of her
desirability.</p>
<p>Twice during their talk Martha cleared her throat significantly
and loudly, trying to attract their attention.</p>
<p>The efforts bore no fruit, and Martha might have been
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_104'></SPAN>104</span>
entirely forgotten if she had not finally got to her feet
and laid a hand on Marion’s shoulder.</p>
<p>“I’s gwine to lie down a spell, honey,” she said. “You-all
don’t need no third party to entertain you. An’ I’s
powerful tiahd.” And over the girl’s shoulder she smiled
broadly and sympathetically at Taylor.</p>
<p>The sun was filling the western level with a glowing,
golden haze when Miss Harlan got to her feet and
announced that she was going home.</p>
<p>“It’s the first day I have really enjoyed,” she told
Taylor as she sat in the saddle, looking at him. He had
got up and was standing at the porch edge. “That is, it
is the first enjoyable day I have passed since I have been
here,” she added.</p>
<p>“I wouldn’t say that I’ve been exactly bored myself,”
he grinned at her. “But I’m not so sure about Friday;
for if you come Friday the chances are that my ankle
will be well again, and I’ll have to make myself scarce.
You see, my excuse will be gone.”</p>
<p>Martha was sitting on her horse close by, and her eyes
were dancing.</p>
<p>“Don’ you go an’ bust your haid, Mr. Taylor!” she
warned. “I knows somebuddy that would be powerful
sorry if that would happen to you!”</p>
<p>“Martha!” said Marion severely. But her eyes were
eloquent as they met Taylor’s twinkling ones; and she
saw a deep color come into Taylor’s cheeks.
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_105'></SPAN>105</span></p>
<p>Taylor watched her until she grew dim in the distance;
then he turned and faced the tall young puncher, who
had stepped upon the porch and had been standing near.</p>
<p>The puncher grinned. “Takin’ ’em off now, boss?”
he asked.</p>
<p>He pointed to the bandages on Taylor’s right foot.
In one of the young puncher’s hands was Taylor’s right
boot.</p>
<p>“Yes,” returned Taylor.</p>
<p>He sat down in the rocker he had occupied all afternoon,
and the young puncher removed the bandages, revealing
Taylor’s bare foot and ankle, with no bruise or
swelling to mar the white skin.</p>
<p>Taylor drew on the sock which the puncher drew from
the boot; then he pulled on the boot and stood up.</p>
<p>The puncher was grinning hugely, but no smile was on
Taylor’s face.</p>
<p>“It worked, boss,” said the puncher; “she didn’t
tumble. I thought I’d laff my head off when I seen her
fixin’ the pillow for you—an’ your foot not hurt more
than mine. You ought to be plumb tickled, pullin’ off a
trick like that!”</p>
<p>“I ain’t a heap tickled,” declared Taylor glumly.
“There’s no fun in fooling <em>her</em>!”</p>
<p>Which indicated that Taylor’s thoughts were now
serious.</p>
<h2><span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_106'></SPAN>106</span><SPAN name='chXII' id='chXII'></SPAN>CHAPTER XII—LIFTING THE MASK</h2>
<p>Elam Parsons awoke early in the morning following
that on which Marion Harlan’s visit to the
Arrow occurred. He lay for a long time smiling at the
ceiling, with a feeling that something pleasurable was in
store for him, but not able to determine what that something
was.</p>
<p>It was not long, however, before Parsons remembered.</p>
<p>When he had got out of bed the previous morning he
had discovered the absence of Marion and Martha. Also,
he found that two of the horses were missing—Marion’s,
and one of the others he had personally bought.</p>
<p>Parsons spent the day in Dawes. Shortly before dusk
he got on his horse and rode homeward. Dismounting
at the stable, he noted that the two absent horses had not
come in. He grinned disagreeably and went into the
house. He emerged almost instantly, for Marion and
Martha had not returned.</p>
<p>Later he saw them, Marion leading, coming up the
slope that led to the level upon which the house stood.</p>
<p>Marion had retired early, and after she had gone to her
room Parsons had questioned Martha.
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_107'></SPAN>107</span></p>
<p>Twice while getting into his clothes this morning Parsons
chuckled audibly. There was malicious amusement
in the sound.</p>
<p>Once he caught himself saying aloud:</p>
<p>“I knew it would come, sooner or later. And she’s
picked out the clodhopper! This will tickle Carrington!”</p>
<p>Again he laughed—such a laugh as the good people
of Westwood might have used had they known what
Parsons knew—that Marion Harlan had visited a
stranger at his ranchhouse—a lonely place, far from
prying eyes.</p>
<p>Parsons hated the girl as heartily as he had hated her
father. He hated her because of her close resemblance to
her parent; and he had hated Larry Harlan ever since
their first meeting.</p>
<p>Parsons likewise had no affection for Carrington.
They had been business associates for many years, and
their association had been profitable for both; but there
was none of that respect and admiration which marks
many partnerships.</p>
<p>On several occasions Carrington had betrayed greediness
in the division of the spoils of their ventures. But
Carrington was the strong man, ruthless and determined,
and Parsons was forced to nurse his resentment in silence.
He meant some day, however, to repay Carrington, and
he lost no opportunity to harass him.
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_108'></SPAN>108</span>
And yet it had been Parsons who had brought Carrington
to Westwood two years before. He knew Carrington;
he knew something of the big man’s way with
women, of his merciless treatment of them. And he had
invited Carrington to Westwood, hoping that the big
man would add Marion Harlan to his list of victims.</p>
<p>So far, Carrington had made little progress. This fact,
contrary to Parsons’ principles, had afforded the man
secret enjoyment. He liked to see Carrington squirm
under disappointment. He anticipated much pleasure in
watching Carrington’s face when he should tell him where
Marion had been the day before.</p>
<p>He breakfasted alone—early—chuckling his joy.
And shortly after he left the table he was on a horse,
riding toward Dawes.</p>
<p>He reached town about eight and went directly to Carrington’s
rooms in the Castle.</p>
<p>Carrington had shaved and washed, and was sitting at
a front window, coatless, his hair uncombed, when
Parsons knocked on the door.</p>
<p>“You’re back, eh?” said Parsons as he took a chair
near the window. “Danforth was telling me you went
to see the governor. Did you fix it?”</p>
<p>Carrington grinned. “Taylor was to take the oath
today. He won’t take it—at least, not the sort of oath
he expected.”</p>
<p>“It’s lucky you knew the governor.”
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_109'></SPAN>109</span></p>
<p>“H-m.” The grim grunt indicated that, governor or
no governor, Carrington would not be denied.</p>
<p>Parsons smirked. But Carrington detected an unusual
quality in the smirk—something more than satisfaction
over the success of the visit to the governor. There was
malicious amusement in the smirk, and anticipation. Parsons’
expressed satisfaction was not over what <em>had</em> happened,
but over what was <em>going</em> to happen.</p>
<p>Carrington knew Parsons, and therefore Carrington
gave no sign of what he had seen in Parsons’ face. He
talked of Dawes and of their own prospects. But once,
when Carrington mentioned Marion Harlan, quite casually,
he noted that Parsons’ eyes widened.</p>
<p>But Parsons said nothing on the subject which had
brought him until he had talked for half an hour. Then,
noting that his manner had aroused Carrington’s interest,
he said softly:</p>
<p>“This man, Taylor, seems destined to get in your way,
doesn’t he?”</p>
<p>“What do you mean?” demanded Carrington shortly.</p>
<p>“Do you remember telling me—on the train, with this
man, Taylor, listening—that your story to Marion, of
her father having been seen in this locality, was a fairy
tale—without foundation?”</p>
<p>At Carrington’s nod Parsons continued:</p>
<p>“Well, it seems it was not a fairy tale, after all. For
Larry Harlan was in his section for two or three years!”
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_110'></SPAN>110</span></p>
<p>“Who told you that?” Carrington slid forward in
his chair and was looking hard at Parsons.</p>
<p>Parsons was enjoying the other’s astonishment, and
Parsons was not to be hurried—he wanted to <em>taste</em> the
flavor of his news; it was as good to his palate as a choice
morsel of food to the palate of a disciple of Epicurus.</p>
<p>“It came in a sort of roundabout way, I understand,”
said Parsons. “It seems that during your absence Marion
made a number of inquiries about her father. Then a
man named Ben Mullarky rode over to the house and
told her that Larry had been in this country—that he
had worked for the Arrow.”</p>
<p>“That’s Taylor’s ranch,” said Carrington. A deep
scowl furrowed his forehead; his lips extended in a sullen
pout.</p>
<p>Parsons was enjoying him. “Taylor again, eh?” he
said softly. “First, he appears on the train, where he
gets an earful of something we don’t want him to hear;
then he is elected mayor, which is detrimental to our interests;
then we discover that Larry Harlan worked for
him. <em>You’ll</em> be interested to know that Marion went
right over to the Arrow—in fact, she spent part of Monday
there, and practically <em>all</em> of yesterday. More, Taylor
has invited her to come whenever she wants to.”</p>
<p>“She went alone?” demanded Carrington.</p>
<p>“With Martha, my negro housekeeper. But that—”
Parsons made a gesture of derision and went on: “Martha
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_111'></SPAN>111</span>
says Taylor was there with her, and that the two of
them—with Martha asleep in the house—spent the
entire afternoon on the porch, talking rather intimately.”</p>
<p>To Parsons’ surprise Carrington did not betray the
perturbation Parsons expected. The scowl was still furrowing
his forehead, his lips were still in the sullen pout;
but he said nothing, looking steadily at Parsons.</p>
<p>At last his lips moved slightly; Parsons could see the
clenched teeth between them.</p>
<p>“Where’s Larry Harlan now?”</p>
<p>Parsons related the story told him by Martha—which
had been imparted to the negro woman by Marion in
confidence—that Larry Harlan had been accidentally
killed, searching for a mine.</p>
<p>When Parsons finished Carrington got up. There
was a grin on his face as he stepped to where Parsons sat
and placed his two hands heavily on the other’s shoulders.</p>
<p>There was a grin on his face, but his eyes were agleam
with a slumbering passion that made Parsons catch his
breath with a gasp. And his voice, low, and freighted
with menace, caused Parsons to quake with terror.</p>
<p>“Parsons,” he said, “I want you to understand this:
I am going to be the law out here. I’ll run things to suit
myself. I’ll have no half-hearted loyalty, and I’ll destroy
any man who opposes me! Those who are not with me
to the last gasp are against me!” He laughed, and Parsons
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_112'></SPAN>112</span>
felt the man’s hot breath on his face—so close was
it to his own.</p>
<p>“I was born a thousand years too late, Parsons!” he
went on. “I am a robber baron brought down to date—modernized.
I believe that in me flows the blood of a
pirate, a savage, or an ancient king; I have all the instincts
of a tribal chief whose principles are to rule or ruin!
I’ll have no law out here but my own desires; and hypocrisy—in
others—doesn’t appeal to me!</p>
<p>“You’ve told me a tale that interested me, but in the
telling of it you made one mistake—you enjoyed the discomfiture
you thought it would give me. You tingled
with malice. Just to show you that I’ll not tolerate disloyalty
from you—even in thought—I’m going to
punish you.”</p>
<p>He dropped his big hands to Parsons’ throat, shutting
off the incipient scream that issued from between
the man’s lips. Parsons fought with all his strength to
escape the grip of the iron fingers at his throat, twisting
and squirming frenziedly in the chair. But the fingers
tightened their grip, and when the man’s face began to
turn blue-black, Carrington released him and looked down
at his victim, laughing vibrantly.</p>
<h2><span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_113'></SPAN>113</span><SPAN name='chXIII' id='chXIII'></SPAN>CHAPTER XIII—THE SHADOW OF TROUBLE</h2>
<p>Elam recovered slowly, for Carrington had choked
him into unconsciousness. Out of the blank, dark
coma Parsons came, his brain reeling, his body racked
with agonizing pains. His hands went to his throat
before he could open his eyes; he pulled at the flesh to
ease the constriction that still existed there; he caught
his breath in great gasps that shrilled through the room.
And when at last he succeeded in getting his breath to
come regularly, he opened his eyes and saw Carrington
seated in a chair near him, watching him with a cold,
speculative smile.</p>
<p>He heard Carrington’s voice saying: “Pretty close,
wasn’t it, Parsons?” But he did not answer; his vocal
cords were still partially paralyzed.</p>
<p>He closed his eyes again and stretched out in the chair.
Carrington thought he had fainted, but Parsons was
merely resting—and thinking.</p>
<p>His thoughts were not pleasant. Many times during
the years of their association he had seen the beast in
Carrington’s eyes, but this was the first time Carrington
had even shown it in his presence, naked and ugly.
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_114'></SPAN>114</span>
Carrington had told him many times that were he not hemmed
in with laws and courts he would tramp ruthlessly over
every obstacle that got in his way; and Parsons knew
now that the man had meant what he said. The beast in
him was rampant; his passions were to have free rein;
he had thrown off the shackles of civilization and was
prepared to do murder to attain his aims.</p>
<p>Parsons realized his own precarious predicament. Carrington
controlled every cent Parsons owned—it was in
the common pool, which was in Carrington’s charge.
Parsons might leave Dawes, but his money must stay—Carrington
would never give it up. More, Parsons was
now afraid to ask for an accounting or a division, for
fear Carrington would kill him.</p>
<p>Parsons knew he must stay in Dawes, and that from
now on he must play lackey to the master who, at last in
an environment that suited him, had so ruthlessly demonstrated
his principles.</p>
<p>In a spirit of abject surrender Parsons again opened
his eyes and sat up. Carrington rose and again stood
over him.</p>
<p>“You understand now, Parsons, I’m running things.
You stay in the background. If you interfere with me
I’ll kill you. I’ll kill you if you laugh at me again. Your
job out here is to take care of Marion Harlan. You’re to
keep her here. If she gets away I’ll manhandle you!
Now get out of here!”
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_115'></SPAN>115</span></p>
<p>An hour later Parsons was sitting on the front porch
of the big house, staring vacantly out into the big level
below him, his heart full of hatred and impotent resentment;
his brain, formerly full of craft and guile, now
temporarily atrophied through its attempts to comprehend
the new character of the man who had throttled him.</p>
<p>In Dawes, Carrington was getting into his clothing.
He was smiling, his eyes glowing with grim satisfaction.
At nine o’clock Carrington descended the stairs, stopped
in the hotel lobby to light a cigar; then crossed the street
and went into the courthouse, where he was greeted
effusively by Judge Littlefield. Quinton Taylor, too, was
going to the courthouse.</p>
<p>This morning at ten o’clock, according to information
received from Neil Norton—sent to Taylor by messenger
the night before—Taylor was to take the oath of office.</p>
<p>Taylor was conscious of the honor bestowed upon him
by the people of Dawes, though at first he had demurred,
pointing out that he was not actually a resident of the
town—the Arrow lying seven miles southward. But
this objection had been met and dismissed by his friends,
who had insisted that he was a resident of the town by
virtue of his large interests there, and from the fact that
he occupied an apartment above the Dawes bank, and
that he spent more time in it than he spent in the Arrow
ranchhouse.</p>
<p>But on the ride to Dawes—on Spotted Tail—(this
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_116'></SPAN>116</span>
morning wonderfully docile despite Tuesday’s slander by
his master)—Taylor’s thoughts dwelt not upon the honor
that was to be his, but upon the questionable trick he had
played on Marion Harlan, with the able assistance of the
tall young puncher, Bud Hemmingway.</p>
<p>He looked down at the foot, now unbandaged, with a
frown. The girl’s complete and matter-of-fact belief in
the story of his injury; her sympathy and deep concern;
the self-accusation in her eyes; the instant pardon she
had granted him for staying at the ranchhouse when he
should not have stayed—all these he arrayed against the
bald fact that he had tricked her. And he felt decidedly
guilty.</p>
<p>And yet somehow there was some justification for the
trick. It was the justification of desire. The things a
man wants are not to be denied by the narrow standards
of custom. Does a man miss an opportunity to establish
acquaintance with a girl he has fallen in love with, merely
because custom has decreed that she shall not come
unattended—save by a negro woman—to his house?</p>
<p>Taylor made desire his justification, and his sense of
guilt was dispelled by half.</p>
<p>Nor was the guilt so poignant that it rested heavily on
his conscience since he had done no harm to the girl.</p>
<p>What harm had been done had been done to Taylor
himself. He kept seeing Marion as she sat on the porch,
and the spell of her had seized him so firmly that last
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_117'></SPAN>117</span>
night, after she had left, the ranchhouse had seemed to be
nothing more than four walls out of which all the life had
gone. He felt lonesome this morning, and was in the
grip of a nameless longing.</p>
<p>All the humor had departed from him. For the first
time in all his days a conception of the meaning of life
assailed him, revealing to him a glimpse of the difficulties
of a man in love. For a man may love a girl: his difficulties
begin when the girl seems to become unattainable.</p>
<p>Looming large in Taylor’s thoughts this morning was
Carrington. Having overheard Carrington talking of
her on the train, Taylor thought he knew what Carrington
wanted; but he was in doubt regarding the state of
the girl’s feelings toward the man. Had she yielded to
the man’s intense personal magnetism?</p>
<p>Carrington was handsome; there was no doubt that
almost any girl would be flattered by his attentions. And
had Carrington been worthy of Marion, Taylor would
have entertained no hope of success—he would not even
have thought of it.</p>
<p>But he had overheard Carrington; he knew the man’s
nature was vile and bestial; and already he hated him
with a fervor that made his blood riot when he thought
of him.</p>
<p>When he reached Dawes he found himself hoping that
Marion would not be in town to see that his ankle was
unbandaged. But he might have saved himself that throb
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_118'></SPAN>118</span>
of perturbation, for at that minute Marion was standing
in the front room of the big house, looking out of one
of the windows at Parsons, wondering what had happened
to make him seem so glum and abstracted.</p>
<p>When Taylor dismounted in front of the courthouse
there were several men grouped on the sidewalk near the
door.</p>
<p>Neil Norton was in the group, and he came forward,
smiling.</p>
<p>“We’re here to witness the ceremony,” he told Taylor.</p>
<p>Taylor’s greeting to the other men was not that of the
professional politician. He merely grinned at them and
returned a short: “Well, let’s get it over with,” to Norton’s
remark. Then, followed by his friends, he entered
the courthouse.</p>
<p>Taylor knew Judge Littlefield. He had no admiration
for the man, and yet his greeting was polite and
courteous—it was the greeting of an American citizen
to an official.</p>
<p>Taylor’s first quick glance about the interior of the
courthouse showed him Carrington. The latter was sitting
in an armchair near a window toward the rear of
the room. He smiled as Taylor’s glance swept him, but
Taylor might not have seen the smile. For Taylor was
deeply interested in other things.</p>
<p>A conception of the serious responsibility that he was
to accept assailed him. Until now the thing had been
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_119'></SPAN>119</span>
entirely personal; his thoughts had centered upon the
honor that was to be his—his friends had selected him
for an important position. And yet Taylor was not vain.</p>
<p>Now, however, ready to accept the oath of office, he
realized that he was to become the servant of the municipality;
that these friends of his had elected him not
merely to honor him but because they trusted him, because
they were convinced that he would administer the
affairs of the young town capably and in a fair and impartial
manner. They depended upon him for justice,
advice, and guidance.</p>
<p>All these things, to be sure, Taylor would give them
to the best of his ability. They must have known that
or they would not have elected him.</p>
<p>These thoughts sobered him as he walked to the little
wooden railing in front of the judge’s desk; and his face
was grave as he looked at the other.</p>
<p>“I am ready to take the oath, Judge Littlefield,” he
gravely announced.</p>
<p>Glancing sidewise, Taylor saw that a great many men
had come into the room. He did not turn to look at
them, however, for he saw a gleam in Judge Littlefield’s
eyes that held his attention.</p>
<p>“That will not be necessary, Mr. Taylor,” he heard
the judge say. “The governor, through the attorney-general,
has ruled you were not legally elected to the office
you aspire to. Only last night I was notified of the
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_120'></SPAN>120</span>
decision. It was late, or I should have taken steps to apprise
you of the situation.”</p>
<p>Taylor straightened. He heard exclamations from
many men in the room; he was conscious of a tension
that had come into the atmosphere. Some men scuffled
their feet; and then there was a deep silence.</p>
<p>Taylor smiled without mirth. His dominant emotion
was curiosity.</p>
<p>“Not legally elected?” he said. “Why?”</p>
<p>The judge passed a paper to Taylor; it was one of those
that had been delivered to the judge by Carrington.</p>
<p>The judge did not meet Taylor’s eyes.</p>
<p>“You’ll find a full statement of the case, there,”
he said. “Briefly, however, the governor finds that your
name did not appear on the ballots.”</p>
<p>Norton, who had been standing at Taylor’s side all
along, now shoved his way to the railing and leaned over
it, his face white with wrath.</p>
<p>“There’s something wrong here, Judge Littlefield!” he
charged. “Taylor’s name was on every ballot that was
counted for him. I personally examined every ballot!”</p>
<p>The judge smiled tolerantly, almost benignantly.</p>
<p>“Of course—to be sure,” he said. “Mr. Taylor’s
name appeared on a good many ballots; his friends <em>wrote</em>
it, with pencil, and otherwise. But the law expressly
states that a candidate’s name must be <em>printed</em>. Therefore,
obeying the letter of the law, the governor has ruled
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_121'></SPAN>121</span>
that Mr. Taylor was not elected.” There was malicious
satisfaction in Judge Littlefield’s eyes as they met Taylor’s.
Taylor could see that the judge was in entire
sympathy with the influences that were opposing him,
though the judge tried, with a grave smile, to create an
impression of impartiality.</p>
<p>“Under the governor’s ruling, therefore,” he continued,
“and acting under explicit directions from the
attorney-general, I am empowered to administer the oath
of office to the legally elected candidate, David Danforth.
Now, if Mr. Danforth is in the courtroom, and
will come forward, we shall conclude.”</p>
<p>Mr. Danforth was in the courtroom; he was sitting
near Carrington; and he came forward, his face slightly
flushed, with the gaze of every person in the room on
him.</p>
<p>He smiled apologetically at Taylor as he reached the
railing, extending a hand.</p>
<p>“I’m damned sorry, Taylor,” he declared. “This is
all a surprise to me. I hadn’t any doubt that they would
swear you in. No hard feelings?”</p>
<p>Taylor had been conscious of the humiliation of his
position. He knew that his friends would expect him
to fight. And yet he felt more like gracefully yielding
to the forces which had barred him from office upon the
basis of so slight a technicality. And despite the knowledge
that he had been robbed of the office, he would have
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_122'></SPAN>122</span>
taken Danforth’s hand, had he not at that instant chanced
to glance at Carrington.</p>
<p>The latter’s eyes were aglow with a vindictive triumph;
as his gaze met Taylor’s, his lips curved with a
sneer.</p>
<p>A dark passion seized Taylor—the bitter, savage rage
of jealousy. The antagonism he had felt for Carrington
that day on the train when he had heard Carrington’s
voice for the first time was suddenly intensified. It had
been growing slowly, provoked by his knowledge of the
man’s evil designs on Marion Harlan. But now there
had come into the first antagonism a gripping lust to
injure the other, a determination to balk him, to defeat
him, to meet him on his own ground and crush him.</p>
<p>For Carrington’s sneer had caused the differences between
them to become sharply personal; it would make
the fight that was brewing between the two men not a
political fight, but a fight of the spirit.</p>
<p>Taylor interpreted the sneer as a challenge, and he accepted
it. His eyes gleamed with hatred unmistakable
as they held Carrington’s; and the grin on his lips was
the cold, unhumorous grin of the fighter who is not dismayed
by odds. His voice was low and sharp, and it
carried to every person in the room:</p>
<p>“We won’t shake, Danforth; you are not particular
enough about the character of your friends!”</p>
<p>The look was significant, and it compelled the eyes
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_123'></SPAN>123</span>
of all of Taylor’s friends, so that Carrington instantly
found himself the center of interest.</p>
<p>However, he did not change color; on his face a bland
smile testified to his entire indifference to what Taylor
or Taylor’s friends thought of him.</p>
<p>Taylor grinned mirthlessly at the judge, spoke shortly
to Norton, and led the way out through the front door,
followed by a number of his friends.</p>
<p>Norton took Taylor into his office, adjoining the courthouse,
and threw himself into a chair, grumbling profanely.
Outside they could see the crowd filing down the
street, voicing its opinion of the startling proceeding.</p>
<p>“An election is an election,” they heard one man say—a
Taylor sympathizer. “What difference does it make
that Taylor’s name wasn’t <em>printed</em>? It’s a dawg-gone
frame-up, that’s what it is!”</p>
<p>But Danforth’s adherents were not lacking; and there
were arguments in loud, vigorous language among men
who passed the door of the <em>Eagle</em> office.</p>
<p>“I could have printed the damned ballots, myself—if
I had thought it necessary,” mourned Norton. “And now
we’re skinned out of it!”</p>
<p>Norton’s disgust was complete and bitter; he had slid
down in the chair, his chin on his chest, his hands shoved
deep into the pockets of his trousers.</p>
<p>Yet his dejection had not infected Taylor; the latter’s
lips were curved in a faint smile, ironic and saturnine.
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_124'></SPAN>124</span>
It was plain to Norton that whatever humor there was
in the situation was making its appeal to Taylor. The
thought angered Norton, and he sat up, demanding
sharply: “Well, what in hell are you going to do
about it?”</p>
<p>Taylor grinned at the other. “Nothing, now,” he said.
“We might appeal to the courts, but if the law specifies
that a candidate’s name must be printed, the courts would
sustain the governor. It looks to me, Norton, as though
Carrington and Danforth have the cards stacked.”</p>
<p>Norton groaned and again slid down into his chair.
He heard Taylor go out, but he did not change his position.
He sat there with his eyes closed, profanely accusing
himself, for he alone was to blame for the complete
defeat that had descended upon his candidate; and he
could not expect Taylor to fight a law which, though
unjust and arbitrary, was the only law in the Territory.</p>
<p>Taylor had not gone far. He stepped into the door
of the courthouse, to meet Carrington, who was coming
out. Danforth and Judge Littlefield were talking animatedly
in the rear of the room. They ceased talking
when they saw Taylor, and faced toward him, looking
at him wonderingly.</p>
<p>Carrington halted just inside the threshold of the doorway,
and he, too, watched Taylor curiously, though there
was a bland, sneering smile on his face.</p>
<p>Taylor’s smile as he looked at the men was still faintly
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_125'></SPAN>125</span>
ironic, and his eyes were agleam with a light that baffled
the other men—they could not determine just what
emotion they reflected.</p>
<p>And Taylor’s manner was as quietly deliberate and
nonchalant as though he had merely stepped into the
room for a social visit. His gaze swept the three men.</p>
<p>“Framing up—again, eh?” he said, with drawling
emphasis. “You sure did a good job for a starter. I
just stepped in to say a few words to you—all of you.
To you first, Littlefield.” And now his eyes held the
judge—they seemed to squint genially at the man.</p>
<p>“I happen to know that our big, sleek four-flusher
here”—nodding toward Carrington—“came here to
loot Dawes. Quite accidentally, I overheard him boasting
of his intentions. Danforth was sent here by Carrington
more than a year ago to line things up, politically.
I don’t know how many are in the game—and I don’t
care. You are in it, Littlefield. I saw that by the delight
you took in informing me of the decision of the attorney-general.
I just stepped in to tell you that I know what is
going on, and to warn you that you can’t do it! You had
better pull out before you make an ass of yourself,
Littlefield!”</p>
<p>The judge’s face was crimson. “This is an outrage,
Taylor!” he sputtered. “I’ll have you jailed for contempt
of court!”</p>
<p>“Not you!” gibed Taylor, calmly. “You haven’t the
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_126'></SPAN>126</span>
nerve! I’d like nothing better than to have you do it.
You’re a little fuzzy dog that doesn’t crawl out of its
kennel until it hears the snap of its master’s fingers!
That’s all for you!”</p>
<p>He grinned at Danforth, felinely, and the man flushed
under the odd gleam in the eyes that held his.</p>
<p>“I can classify you with one word, Dave,” he declared;
“you’re a crook! That lets you out; you do what
you are told!”</p>
<p>He now ignored the others and faced Carrington.</p>
<p>His grin faded quickly, the lips stiffening. But still
there was a hint of cold humor in his manner that created
the impression that he was completely in earnest; that he
was keenly enjoying himself and that he did not feel
at all tragic. And yet, underlying the mask of humor,
Carrington saw the passionate hatred Taylor felt for
him.</p>
<p>Carrington sneered. He attempted to smile, but the
malevolent bitterness of his passions turned the smile
into a hideous smirk. He had hated Taylor at first sight;
and now, with the jealousy provoked by the knowledge
that Taylor had turned his eyes toward Marion Harlan,
the hatred had become a lust to destroy the other.</p>
<p>Before Taylor could speak, Carrington stepped toward
him, thrusting his face close to Taylor’s. The man was
in the grip of a mighty rage that bloated his face, that
made his breath come in great labored gasps. He had
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_127'></SPAN>127</span>
not meant to so boldly betray his hatred, but the violence
of his passions drove him on.</p>
<p>He knew that Taylor was baiting him, mocking him,
taunting him; that Taylor’s words to the judge and to
Danforth had been uttered with the grimly humorous
purpose of arousing the men to some unwise and precipitate
action; he knew that Taylor was enjoying the
confusion he had brought.</p>
<p>But Carrington had lost his self-control.</p>
<p>Without a word, but with a smothered imprecation that
issued gutturally from between his clenched teeth, he
swung a fist with bitter malignance at Taylor’s face.</p>
<p>The blow did not land, for Taylor, self-possessed and
alert, had been expecting it. He slipped his head sidewise
slightly, evading the fist by a narrow margin, and, tensed,
his muscles taut, he drove his own right fist upward,
heavily.</p>
<p>Carrington, reeling forward under the impetus of the
force he had expended, ran fairly into the fist. It crashed
to the point of his jaw and he was unconscious, rigid,
and upright on his feet in the instant before he sagged
and tumbled headlong out through the open doorway
into the street.</p>
<p>With a bound, his face set in a mirthless grin, Taylor
was after him, landing beyond him in the windrowed dust
at the edge of the sidewalk, ready and willing to administer
further punishment.</p>
<h2><span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_128'></SPAN>128</span><SPAN name='chXIV' id='chXIV'></SPAN>CHAPTER XIV—THE FACE OF A FIGHTER</h2>
<p>Slouching in his chair, in an attitude of complete
dejection, Neil Norton was glumly digesting the
dregs of defeat.</p>
<p>The <em>Eagle</em> office adjoined the courthouse. Both were
one-story frame structures, flimsy, with one thin wall between
them; and to Norton’s ears as he sat with his
unpleasant thoughts, came the sound of voices, muffled,
but resonant. Someone was speaking with force and
insistence. Norton attuned his ears to the voice. It was
then he discovered there was only one voice, and that
Taylor’s.</p>
<p>He sat erect, both hands gripping the arms of his chair.
Then he got up, walked to the front door of the <em>Eagle</em>
office, and looked out. He was just in time to see Carrington
tumble out through the door of the courthouse
and land heavily on the sidewalk in front of the building.
Immediately afterward he saw Taylor follow.</p>
<p>Norton exclaimed his astonishment, and he saw Taylor
turn toward him, a broad, mirthless grin on his face.</p>
<p>“Good Heavens!” breathed Norton, “he’s started a
ruckus!”
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_129'></SPAN>129</span></p>
<p>Taylor had not moved. He was looking at Norton
when a man leaped from the door of the courthouse,
straight at him. It was Danforth, his face hideous with
rage.</p>
<p>Taylor sensed the movement, wheeled, stumbled, and
lost his balance just as Danforth crashed against him.
The two men went down in a heap into the deep dust
of the street, rolling over and over.</p>
<p>Danforth’s impetus had given him the initial advantage,
and he was making the most of it. His fists were
working into Taylor’s face as they rolled in the dust,
his arms swinging like flails. Taylor, caught almost unprepared,
could not get into a position to defend himself.
He shielded his face somewhat by holding his chin close
to his chest and hunching his shoulders up; but Danforth
landed some blows.</p>
<p>There came an instant, however, when Taylor’s surprise
over the assault changed to resentment over the punishment
he was receiving. He had struck Carrington in
self-defense, and he had not expected the attack by
Danforth.</p>
<p>Norton, also surprised, saw that his friend was at a
disadvantage, and he was running forward to help him
when he saw Taylor roll on top of Danforth.</p>
<p>To Norton’s astonishment, Taylor did not seem to be
in a vicious humor, despite the blows Danforth had landed
on him. Taylor came out of the smother with a grin on
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_130'></SPAN>130</span>
his face, wide and exultant, and distinctly visible to
Norton in spite of the streaks of dust that covered it.
Taylor shook his head, his hair erupting a heavy cloud.
Then he got up, permitting Danforth to do likewise.</p>
<p>Regaining his feet, Danforth threw himself headlong
toward Taylor, cursing, his face working with malignant
rage. When Taylor hit him the dust flew from Danforth’s
clothes as it rolls from a dirty carpet flayed with a
beater. Danforth halted, his knees sagged, his head wabbled.
But Taylor gave him a slight respite, and he came
on again.</p>
<p>This time Taylor met him with a smother of sharp,
deadening uppercuts that threw the man backward, his
mouth open, his eyes closed. He fell, sagging backward,
his knees unjointed, without a sound.</p>
<p>And now Norton was not the only spectator. Far up
the street a man had emerged from a doorway. He saw
the erupting volcanoes of dust in the street, and he ran
back, shouting, “Fight! Fight!”</p>
<p>Dawes had seen many fights, and had grown accustomed
to them. But there is always novelty in another,
and long before Danforth had received the blows that had
rendered him inactive, nearly all the doors of Dawes’s
buildings were vomiting men. They came, seemingly, in
endless streams, in groups, in twos and singly, eager, excited,
all the streams converging at the street in front
of the courthouse.
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_131'></SPAN>131</span></p>
<p>Mindful of the ethics in an affair of this kind, the
crowd kept considerately at a distance, permitting the
fighting men to continue at their work without interference,
with plenty of room for their energetic movements.</p>
<p>Word ran from lip to lip that Taylor, stung by the
knowledge that he had been robbed of the office to which
he had been elected, had attacked Carrington and Danforth
with the grim purpose of punishing them personally
for their misdeeds.</p>
<p>Taylor was aware of the gathering crowd. When he
had delivered the blows that had finished his political
rival, he saw the dense mass of men in the street around
him; and he felt that all Dawes had assembled.</p>
<p>There was still no rancor in Taylor’s heart; the same
savage humor which had driven him into the courthouse
to acquaint Carrington and the others with his knowledge
of their designs, still gripped him. He had not meant
to force a fight, but neither had he any intention of permitting
Carrington and Danforth to inflict physical punishment
upon him.</p>
<p>But a malicious devil had seized him. He knew that
what he had done would be magnified and distorted by
Carrington, Danforth, and the judge; that they would
charge him with the blame for it; that he faced the probability
of a jail sentence for defending himself. And he
was determined to complete the work he had started.</p>
<p>Therefore, having disposed of Danforth, he grinned at
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_132'></SPAN>132</span>
the eager, excited faces that hemmed him about, and
wheeled toward Carrington.</p>
<p>He was just in time. For Carrington, not badly hurt
by Taylor’s blow, which had catapulted him out of the
door of the courthouse, had been standing back a little,
awaiting an opportunity. The swiftness of Taylor’s
movements had prevented interference by Carrington; but
now, with Danforth down, Carrington saw his chance.</p>
<p>Without a word, Carrington lunged forward. They
met with a shock that caused the dry dust to splay and
spume upward and outward in thin, minute streaks like
the leaping, spraying waters of a fountain. They were
lost, momentarily, in a haze, as the dust fell and enveloped
them.</p>
<p>They emerged from the blot presently, Carrington staggering,
his chin on his chest, his eyes glazed—Taylor
crowding him closely. For while they had been lost in
the smother of dust, Taylor had landed a deadening
uppercut on the big man’s chin.</p>
<p>The big man’s brain was befogged; and yet he still
retained presence of mind enough to shield his chin from
another of those terrific blows. He had crossed his arms
over the lower part of his face, fending off Taylor’s fists
with his elbows.</p>
<p>A Danforth man in the crowd called on Carrington to
“wallop” Taylor, and the big man’s answering grin indicated
that he was not as badly hurt as he seemed.
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_133'></SPAN>133</span></p>
<p>Almost instantly he demonstrated that, for when Taylor,
still following him, momentarily left an opening,
Carrington stepped quickly forward and struck—his big
arm flashing out with amazing rapidity.</p>
<p>The heavy fist landed high on Taylor’s head above
the ear. It was not a blow that would have finished the
fight, even had it landed lower, but it served to warn
Taylor that his antagonist was still strong, and he went
in more warily.</p>
<p>The advantage of the fight was all with Taylor. For
Taylor was cool and deliberate, while Carrington, raging
over the blows he had received, and in the clutch of a bitter
desire to destroy his enemy, wasted much energy in
swinging wildly.</p>
<p>The inaccuracy of Carrington’s hitting amused Taylor;
the men in the crowd about him could see his lips writhing
in a vicious smile at Carrington’s efforts.</p>
<p>Carrington landed some blows. But he had lived luxuriously
during the later years of his life; his muscles
had deteriorated, and though he was still strong, his
strength was not to be compared with that of the
out-of-door man whose clean and simple habits had
toughened his muscles until they were equal to any emergency.</p>
<p>And so the battle went slowly but surely against Carrington.
Fighting desperately, and showing by the expression
of his face that he knew his chances were small,
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_134'></SPAN>134</span>
he tried to work at close quarters. He kept coming in
stubbornly, blocking some blows, taking others; and
finally he succeeded in getting his arms around Taylor.</p>
<p>The crowd had by this time become intensely partisan.
At first it had been silent, but now it became clamorous.
There were some Danforth men, and knowing Danforth
to be aligned with Carrington—because, it seemed to
them, Carrington was taking Danforth’s end of the fight—they
howled for the big man to “give it to him!” And
they grew bitter when they saw that despite Carrington’s
best efforts, and their own verbal support of him,
Carrington was doomed to defeat.</p>
<p>Taylor’s admirers vastly outnumbered Carrington’s.
They did not find it necessary to shout advice to their
champion; but they shouted and roared with approval
as Taylor, driving forward, the grin still on his face,
striking heavily and blocking deftly, kept his enemy
retreating before him.</p>
<p>Carrington, locking his arms around Taylor, hugged
him desperately for some seconds—until he recovered
his breath, and until his head cleared, and he could fix
objects firmly in his vision; and then he heaved mightily,
swung Taylor from his feet and tried to throw him. Taylor’s
feet could get no leverage, but his arms were still
free, and with both of them he hammered the big man’s
head until Carrington, in insane rage, threw Taylor from
him.
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_135'></SPAN>135</span></p>
<p>Taylor landed a little off balance, and before he could
set himself, Carrington threw himself forward. He
swung malignantly, the blow landing glancingly on Taylor’s
head, staggering him. His feet struck an obstruction
and he went to one knee, Carrington striking at him
as he tried to rise.</p>
<p>The blow missed, Carrington turning clear around
from the force of the blow and tumbling headlong into
the dust near Taylor.</p>
<p>They clambered to their feet at the same instant, and
in the next they came together with a shock that made
them both reel backward. And then, still grinning, Taylor
stepped lightly forward. Paying no attention to
Carrington’s blows, he shot in several short, terrific, deadening
uppercuts that landed fairly on the big man’s chin.
Carrington’s hands dropped to his sides, his knees doubled
and he fell limply forward into the dust of the street
where he lay, huddled and unconscious, while turmoil
raged over him.</p>
<p>For the Danforth men in the crowd had yielded to rage
over the defeat of their favorites. They had seen Danforth
go down under the terrific punishment meted out to
him by Taylor; they had seen Carrington suffer the same
fate. Several of them drove forward, muttering profane
threats.</p>
<p>Norton, pale and watchful, fearing just such a contingency,
shoved forward to the center, shouting:
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_136'></SPAN>136</span></p>
<p>“Hold on, men! None of that! It’s a fair fight!
Keep off, there—do you hear?”</p>
<p>A score of Taylor men surged forward to Norton’s
side; the crowd split, forming two sections—one group
of men massing near Norton, the other congregating
around a tall man who seemed to be the leader of their
faction. A number of other men—the cautious and
faint-hearted element which had no personal animus to
spur it to participation in what seemed to threaten to
develop into a riot—retreated a short distance up the
street and stood watching, morbidly curious.</p>
<p>But though violence, concerted and deadly, was imminent,
it was delayed. For Taylor had not yet finished,
and the crowd was curiously following his movements.</p>
<p>Taylor was a picturesquely ludicrous figure. He was
covered with dust from head to foot; his face was
streaked with it; his hair was full of it; it had been ground
into his cheeks, and where blood from a cut on his forehead
had trickled to his right temple, the dust was matted
until it resembled crimson mud.</p>
<p>And yet the man was still smiling. It was not a smile
at which most men care to look when its owner’s attention
is definitely centered upon them; it was a smile full of
grimly humorous malice and determination; the smile of
the fighting man who cares nothing for consequences.</p>
<p>The concerted action which had threatened was, by the
tacit consent of the prospective belligerents, postponed
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_137'></SPAN>137</span>
for the instant. The gaze of every partisan—and of all
the non-partisans—was directed at Taylor.</p>
<p>He had not yet finished. For an instant he stood
looking down at Carrington and Danforth—both now
beginning to recover from their chastisement, and sitting
up in the dust gazing dizzily about them—then with a
chuckle, grim and malicious, Taylor dove toward the door
of the courthouse, where Littlefield was standing.</p>
<p>The judge had been stunned by the ferocity of the
action he had witnessed. Whatever judicial dignity had
been his had been whelmed by the paralyzing fear that
had gripped him, and he stood, holding to the door-jambs,
nerveless, motionless.</p>
<p>He saw Taylor start toward him; he saw a certain light
leaping in the man’s eyes, and he cringed and cried out
in dread.</p>
<p>But he had not the power to retreat from the menace
that was approaching him. He threw out his hands impotently
as Taylor reached him, as though to protest physically.
But Taylor ignored the movement, reaching
upward, a dusty finger and thumb closing on the judge’s
right ear.</p>
<p>There was a jerk, a shrill cry of pain from the judge,
and then he was led into the street, near where Carrington
and Danforth had fallen, and twisted ungently around
until he faced the crowd.</p>
<p>“Men,” said Taylor, in the silence that greeted him as
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_138'></SPAN>138</span>
he stood erect, his finger and thumb still gripping the
judge’s ear, “Judge Littlefield is going to say a few words
to you. He’s going to tell you who started this ruckus—so
there won’t be any nonsense about actions in contempt
of court. Deals like this are pulled off better when the
court takes the public into its confidence. Who started
this thing, judge? Did I?”</p>
<p>“No—o,” was Littlefield’s hesitating reply.</p>
<p>“Who did start it?”</p>
<p>“Mr. Carrington.”</p>
<p>“You saw him?”</p>
<p>“Yes.”</p>
<p>“What did he do?”</p>
<p>“He—er—struck at you.”</p>
<p>“And Danforth?”</p>
<p>“He attacked you while you were in the street.”</p>
<p>“And I’m not to blame?”</p>
<p>“No.”</p>
<p>Taylor grinned and released the judge’s ear. “That’s
all, gentlemen,” he said; “court is dismissed!”</p>
<p>The judge said nothing as he walked toward the door
of the courthouse. Nor did Carrington and Danforth
speak as they followed the judge. Both Carrington and
Danforth seemed to have had enough fighting for one
day.</p>
<p>The victor looked around at the faces in the crowd
that were turned to his, and his grin grew eloquent.
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_139'></SPAN>139</span></p>
<p>“Looks like we’re going to have a mighty peaceable
administration, boys!” he said. His grin included Norton,
at whom he deliberately winked. Then he turned,
mounted his horse—which had stood docilely near by
during the excitement, and which whinnied as he approached
it—and rode down the street to the Dawes
bank, before which he dismounted. Then he went to his
rooms on the floor above, washed and changed his clothes,
and attended to the bruises on his face. Later, looking
out of the window, he saw the crowd slowly dispersing;
and still later he opened the door on Neil Norton, who
came in, deep concern on his face.</p>
<p>“You’ve started something, Squint. After you left I
went into the <em>Eagle</em> office. The partition is thin, and
I could hear Carrington raising hell in there. You
look out; he’ll try to play some dog’s trick on you now!
There’s going to be the devil to pay in this man’s
town!”</p>
<p>Taylor laughed. “How long does it take for a sprained
ankle to mend, Norton?”</p>
<p>Norton looked sharply at Taylor’s feet.</p>
<p>“You sprain one of yours?” he asked.</p>
<p>“Lord, no!” denied Taylor. “I was just wondering.
How long?” he insisted.</p>
<p>“About two weeks. Say, Squint, your brain wasn’t
injured in that ruckus, was it?” he asked solicitously.</p>
<p>“It’s as good as it ever was.”
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_140'></SPAN>140</span></p>
<p>“I don’t believe it!” declared Norton. “Here you’ve
started something serious, and you go to rambling about
sprained ankles.”</p>
<p>“Norton,” said Taylor slowly, “a sprained ankle is a
mighty serious thing—when you’ve forgotten which one
it was!”</p>
<p>“What in——”</p>
<p>“And,” resumed Taylor, “when you don’t know but
that she took particular pains to make a mental note of
it. If I’d wrap the left one up, now, and she knew it was
the right one that had been hurt—or if I’d wrap up the
right one, and she knew it was the wrong one, why she’d
likely——”</p>
<p><em>“She?”</em> groaned Norton, looking at his friend with
bulging eyes that were haunted by a fear that Taylor’s
brain <em>had</em> cracked under the strain of the excitement he
had undergone. He remembered now, that Taylor <em>had</em>
acted in a peculiar manner during the fight; that he had
grinned all through it when he should have been in deadly
earnest.</p>
<p>“Plumb loco!” he muttered.</p>
<p>And then he saw Taylor grinning broadly at him; and
he was suddenly struck with the conviction that Taylor
was not insane; that he was in possession of some secret
that he was trying to confide to his friend, and that he
had begun obliquely. Norton drew a deep breath of
relief.
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_141'></SPAN>141</span></p>
<p>“Lord!” he sighed, “you sure had me going. And
you don’t know which ankle you sprained?”</p>
<p>“I’ve clean forgot. And now she’ll find out that I’ve
lied to her.”</p>
<p>“<em>She?</em>” said Norton significantly.</p>
<p>“Marion Harlan,” grinned Taylor.</p>
<p>Norton caught his breath with a gasp. “You mean
you’ve fallen in love with her? And that you’ve made
her—Oh, Lord! What a situation! Don’t you know
her uncle and Carrington are in cahoots in this deal?”</p>
<p>“It’s my recollection that I told you about that the day
I got back,” Taylor reminded him. And then Taylor told
him the story of the bandaged ankle.</p>
<p>When Taylor concluded, Norton lay back in his chair
and regarded his friend blankly.</p>
<p>“And you mean to tell me that all the time you were
fighting Carrington and Danforth you were thinking
about that ankle?”</p>
<p>“Mostly all the time,” Taylor admitted.</p>
<p>Norton made a gesture of impotence. “Well,” he said,
“if a man can keep his mind on a girl while two men
are trying to knock hell out of him, he’s sure got a bad
case. And all I’ve got to say is that you’re going to have
a lovely ruckus!”</p>
<h2><span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_142'></SPAN>142</span><SPAN name='chXV' id='chXV'></SPAN>CHAPTER XV—GLOOM—AND PLANS</h2>
<p>Elam Parsons sat all day on the wide porch of
the big house nursing his resentment. He was
hunched up in the chair, his shoulders were slouched
forward, his chin resting on the wings of his high,
starched collar, his lips in a pout, his eyes sullen and
gleaming with malevolence.</p>
<p>Parsons was beginning to recover from his astonishment
over the attack Carrington had made on him. He
saw now that he should have known Carrington was the
kind of man he had shown himself to be; for now that
Parsons reflected, he remembered little things that Carrington
had done which should have warned him.</p>
<p>Carrington had never been a real friend. Carrington
had used him—that was it; Carrington had made him
think he was an important member of the partnership,
and he had thought so himself. Now he understood
Carrington. Carrington was selfish and cruel—more,
Carrington was a beast and an ingrate. For it had been
Parsons who had made it possible for Carrington to succeed—for
he had used Parsons’ money all along—having
had very little himself.
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_143'></SPAN>143</span></p>
<p>So Parsons reflected, knowing, however, that he had
not the courage to oppose Carrington. He feared Carrington;
he had always feared him, but now his fear had
become terror—and hate. For Parsons could still feel
the man’s fingers at his throat; and as he sat there on
the porch his own fingers stroked the spot, while in his
heart flamed a great yearning for vengeance.</p>
<hr class='tb' />
<p>Marion Harlan had got up this morning feeling rather
more interested in the big house than she had felt the
day before—or upon any day that she had occupied it.
She, like Parsons, had awakened with a presentiment of
impending pleasure. But, unlike Parsons, she found it
impossible to definitely select an outstanding incident
or memory upon which to base her expectations.</p>
<p>Her anticipations seemed to be broad and inclusive—like
a clear, unobstructed sunset, with an effulgent glow
that seemed to embrace the whole world, warming it,
bringing a great peace.</p>
<p>For upon this morning, suddenly awakening to the
pure, white light that shone into her window, she was
conscious of a feeling of satisfaction with life that was
strange and foreign—a thing that she had never before
experienced. Always there had been a shadow of the
past to darken her vision of the future, but this morning
that shadow seemed to have vanished.</p>
<p>For a long time she could not understand, and she
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_144'></SPAN>144</span>
snuggled up in bed, her brow thoughtfully furrowed,
trying to solve the mystery. It was not until she got up
and was looking out of the window at the mighty basin
in which—like a dot of brown in a lake of emerald green—clustered
the buildings of the Arrow ranch, that knowledge
in an overwhelming flood assailed her. Then a
crimson flush stained her cheeks, her eyes glowed with
happiness, and she clasped her hands and stood rigid for
a long time.</p>
<p>She knew now. A name sprang to her lips, and she
murmured it aloud, softly: “Quinton Taylor.”</p>
<p>Later she appeared to Martha—a vision that made
the negro woman gasp with amazement.</p>
<p>“What happen to you, honey? You-all git good news?
You look light an’ airy—like you’s goin’ to fly!”</p>
<p>“I’ve decided to like this place—after all, Martha.
I—I thought at first that I wouldn’t, but I have changed
my mind.”</p>
<p>Martha looked sharply at her, a sidelong glance that
had quite a little subtle knowledge in it.</p>
<p>“I reckon that ‘Squint’ Taylor make a good many
girls change their mind, honey—he, he, he!”</p>
<p>“Martha!”</p>
<p>“Doan you git ’sturbed, now, honey. Martha shuah
knows the signs. I done discover the signs a long while
ago—when I fall in love with a worfless nigger in St.
Louis. He shuah did captivate me, honey. I done try to
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_145'></SPAN>145</span>
wiggle out of it—but ’tain’t no use. Face the fac’s,
Martha, face the fac’s, I tell myself—an’ I done it. Ain’t
no use for to try an’ fool the fac’s, honey—not one bit
of use! The ol’ fac’ he look at you an’ say: ‘Doan you
try to wiggle ’way from me; I’s heah, an’ heah I’s goin’ to
stay!’ That Squint man ain’t no lady-killer, honey, but
he’s shuah a he-man from the groun’ up!”</p>
<p>Marion escaped Martha as quickly as she could; and
after breakfast began systematically to rearrange the furniture
to suit her artistic ideals.</p>
<p>Martha helped, but not again did Martha refer to
Quinton Taylor—something in Marion’s manner warned
her that she could trespass too far in that direction.</p>
<p>Some time during the morning Marion saw Parsons
ride up and dismount at the stable door; and later she
heard him cross the porch. She looked out of one of the
front windows and saw him huddled in a big rocking-chair,
and she wondered at the depression that sat so
heavily upon him.</p>
<p>The girl did not pause in her work long enough to
partake of the lunch that Martha set for her—so interested
was she; and therefore she did not know whether
or not Parsons came into the house. But along about
four o’clock in the afternoon, wearied of her task, Marion
entered the kitchen. From Martha she learned that
Parsons had not stirred from the chair on the porch
during the entire day.
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_146'></SPAN>146</span></p>
<p>Concerned, Marion went out to him.</p>
<p>Parsons did not hear her; he was still moodily and
resentfully reviewing the incident of the morning.</p>
<p>He started when the girl placed a gentle hand on one of
his shoulders, seeming to cringe from her touch; then he
looked up at her suddenly.</p>
<p>“What do you want?” he demanded.</p>
<p>“Don’t you feel well, Uncle Elam?” she inquired. Her
hand rose from his shoulder to his head, and her fingers
ran through his hair with a light, gentle touch that made
him shiver with repugnance. There were times when
Parsons hated this living image of his brother-in-law with
a fervor that seemed to sear his heart. Now, however,
pity for himself had rather dulled the edge of his hatred.
A calamity had befallen him; he was crushed under it;
and the sympathy of one whom he hated was not entirely
undesirable.</p>
<p>No sense of guilt assailed the man. He had never
betrayed his hate to her, and he would not do so now.
That wasn’t his way. He had always masked it from
her, making her think he felt an affection for her which
was rather the equal of that which custom required a
man should feel for a niece. Yet he had always hated
her.</p>
<p>“I’m not exactly well,” he muttered. “It’s the damned
atmosphere, I suppose.”</p>
<p>“Martha tells me that it <em>does</em> affect some persons,”
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_147'></SPAN>147</span>
said the girl. “And lack of appetite seems to be one of
the first symptoms—in your case. For Martha tells
me you have not eaten.”</p>
<p>The girl’s soft voice irritated Parsons.</p>
<p>“Go away!” he ordered crossly; “I want to think!”</p>
<p>It was not the first time the girl had endured his moods.
She smiled tolerantly, and softly withdrew, busying herself
inside the house.</p>
<p>Parsons did not eat supper; he slunk off to bed and lay
for hours in his room brooding over the thing that had
happened to him.</p>
<p>He got up early the next morning, mounted his horse
and left the house before Marion could get a glimpse
of him. It was still rather early when he reached Dawes.
There, in a saloon, he overheard the story of the fight
in the street in front of the courthouse, and with tingling
eagerness and venomous satisfaction he listened to a man
telling another of the terrible punishment inflicted upon
Carrington by Quinton Taylor.</p>
<p>Parsons did not go to see Carrington, for he feared
a repetition of Carrington’s savage rage, should he permit
the latter to observe his satisfaction over the incident
of yesterday. He knew he could not face Carrington and
conceal the gloating triumph that gripped him.</p>
<p>So he returned to the big house. And for the greater
part of the day he sat in the rocker on the porch, his soul
filled with a vindictive joy.
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_148'></SPAN>148</span></p>
<p>He ate heartily, too; and his manner indicated that he
had quite recovered from the indisposition that had affected
him the previous day. He even smiled at Marion
when she told him he was “looking better.”</p>
<p>But his bitter yearning for vengeance had not been
satisfied by the knowledge that Taylor had thrashed
Carrington. He knew, now that Carrington had ruthlessly
cast him aside, that he was no longer to figure importantly
in the scheme to loot the town; he knew that
it was Carrington’s intention to rob him of every dollar
he had entrusted to the man. He knew, too, that Carrington
would not hesitate to murder him should he offer
the slightest objection, or should he make any visible
resistance to Carrington’s plans.</p>
<p>But Parsons was determined to be revenged upon Carrington,
and he was convinced that he could secure his
revenge without boldly announcing his plans.</p>
<p>As for that, he had no plans. But while sitting in the
rocker on the porch during the long afternoon, the vindictive
light in his eyes suddenly deepened, and he grinned
evilly.</p>
<p>That night after supper he exerted himself to be agreeable
to Marion. During the interval between sunset and
darkness he walked with the girl along the edge of the
butte above the big valley which held the irrigation dam.
And while standing in a timber grove at the edge of the
butte, he questioned her deftly about the news she had
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_149'></SPAN>149</span>
received of her father, and she told him of her visits to
the Arrow.</p>
<p>He had watched her narrowly, and he saw the flush
that came into her cheeks each time Taylor was mentioned.</p>
<p>“He is a remarkably forceful man,” he observed
once, when he mentioned Taylor. “And if I am not
mistaken, Carrington is going to have his hands full
with him.”</p>
<p>“What do you mean? Do you mean that Mr. Taylor
is not in sympathy with Carrington’s plans concerning
Dawes?”</p>
<p>“I mean just that. And if you had happened to be in
Dawes yesterday you might have witnessed a demonstration
of Taylor’s lack of sympathy with Carrington’s plans.
For”—and now Parsons’ eyes gleamed maliciously—“after
Judge Littlefield, acting under instructions from
the governor, had refused to administer the oath of
office to Taylor—inducting his rival, Danforth, into the
position instead——”</p>
<p>Here the girl interrupted, and Parsons was forced to
relate the tale in its entirety.</p>
<p>“Uncle Elam,” she said when Parsons paused, “are
you certain that Carrington’s intentions toward Dawes
are honorable?”</p>
<p>Parsons smiled crookedly behind a palm, and then
uncertainly at the girl.</p>
<p>“I don’t know, Marion. Carrington is a rather hard
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_150'></SPAN>150</span>
man to gauge. He has always been mighty uncommunicative
and headstrong. He is getting ruthless and domineering,
too. I am rather afraid—that is, my dear, I
am beginning to believe we made a mistake in Carrington.
He doesn’t seem to be the sort of man we thought him
to be. If he were like that man Taylor, now——” He
paused and glanced covertly at the girl, noting the glow
in her eyes.</p>
<p>“Yes,” he resumed, “Taylor <em>is</em> a man. My dear,” he
added confidentially, “there is going to be trouble in
Dawes—I am convinced of that; trouble between Carrington
and Taylor. Taylor thrashed Carrington yesterday,
but Carrington isn’t the kind to give up. I have
withdrawn from active participation in the affairs that
brought me here. I am not going to take sides. I don’t
care who wins. That may sound disloyal to you—but
look here!” He showed her several black and blue marks
on his throat. “Carrington did that—the day before
yesterday. Choked me.” His voice quavered with self-pity,
whereat the girl caught her breath in quick sympathy
and bent to examine the marks. When she stood erect
again Parsons saw her eyes flashing with indignation, and
he knew that whatever respect the girl had had for Carrington
had been forever destroyed.</p>
<p>“Oh!” she said, “why did he choke you?”</p>
<p>“Because I frankly told him I did not approve of his
methods,” lied Parsons, smirking virtuously. “He
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_151'></SPAN>151</span>
showed his hand, unmistakably, and his methods mean
evil to Dawes.”</p>
<p>The girl stiffened. “I shall go directly to Dawes and
tell Carrington what I think of him!” she declared.</p>
<p>“No—for God’s sake!” protested Parsons. “He
would kill me! He would know, instantly, that I had
been talking. My life would not be worth a snap of your
fingers! Don’t let on that I have said <em>anything</em> to you!
Let him come here, and treat him as you have always
treated him. But warn Taylor. Taylor may know
something—it is certain he suspects something—but
Taylor will not know everything. Make a friend of
Taylor, my dear. Go to him—visit his ranch—as much
as you like. But if Carrington says anything to you about
going there, tell him I opposed it. That will mislead him.”</p>
<p>When Parsons and the girl reached the house, Parsons
stood near the kitchen door and watched her enter. He
did not go in, himself; he walked around to the front and
sat on the edge of the porch, grinning maliciously. For
he knew something of the tortures of jealousy, and he
was convinced that he had added something to the antagonism
that already had been the cause of one clash between
Carrington and Taylor. And Parsons was convinced
that both he and Carrington had made a mistake
in planning to loot Dawes; that despite the connivance
of the governor and Judge Littlefield, Quinton Taylor
would defeat them.
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_152'></SPAN>152</span></p>
<p>Parsons might lose his money; but the point was that
Carrington would also lose. And if Parsons was wise
and cautious—and did not antagonize Taylor—there
was a chance that he might gain more through his friendship—a
professed friendship—for Taylor, than he
would have won had he been loyal to Carrington. At the
least, he would have the satisfaction of working against
Carrington in the dark. And to a man of Parsons’ character
that was a satisfaction not to be lightly considered.</p>
<h2><span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_153'></SPAN>153</span><SPAN name='chXVI' id='chXVI'></SPAN>CHAPTER XVI—A MAN BECOMES A BRUTE</h2>
<p>During the days that Parsons had passed nursing
his resentment, Carrington had been busy. Despite
the bruises that marked his face (which, by the way, a
clever barber had disguised until they were hardly visible)
Carrington appeared in public as though nothing had
happened.</p>
<p>The fight at the courthouse had aroused the big man
to the point of volcanic action. The lust for power that
had seized him; the implacable resolution to rule, to
win, to have his own way in all things; his passionate
hatred of Taylor; his determination to destroy anyone
who got in his path—these were the forces that drove
him.</p>
<p>Taylor had brought matters to a sudden and unexpected
crisis. Carrington had planned to begin his campaign
differently, to insinuate himself into the political life of
Dawes; and he had gone to the courthouse intending to
keep in the background, but Taylor had forced him into
the open.</p>
<p>Therefore, Carrington had no choice, and he instantly
accepted Taylor’s challenge. After reentering the courthouse,
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_154'></SPAN>154</span>
following the departure of Taylor, Carrington
had insisted that Judge Littlefield have Taylor taken into
custody on a contempt of court charge. Littlefield had
flatly refused, and the resulting argument had been what
Neil Norton had overheard. But Littlefield had not
yielded to Carrington’s insistence.</p>
<p>“That would be ridiculous, after what has happened,”
the judge declared. “The whole country would be laughing
at us. More, you can see that public sentiment is
with Taylor. And he forced me to publicly admit that
you were to blame. I simply won’t do it!”</p>
<p>“All right,” grinned Carrington, darkly; “I’ll find another
way to get him!”</p>
<p>And so for the instant Carrington dismissed Taylor
from his thoughts, devoting his attention to the task of
organizing his forces for the campaign he was to make
against the town.</p>
<p>He held many conferences with Danforth and with
three of five men who had been elected to the new city
council—that political body having also been provided
under the new charter. Three of the members—Cartwright,
Ellis, and Warden—were Danforth men, cogs
of that secret machine which for more than a year Danforth
had been perfecting at Carrington’s orders.</p>
<p>Some officials were appointed by Mayor Danforth—at
Carrington’s direction; a chief of police, a municipal
judge, a town clerk, a treasurer—and a host of other
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_155'></SPAN>155</span>
office-holders inevitable to a system of government which
permits the practice.</p>
<p>Carrington dominated every conference; he made it
plain that he was to rule Dawes—that Danforth and all
the others were subject to his orders.</p>
<p>Only one day was required to perfect Carrington’s
organization, and on Thursday evening, with everything
running smoothly, Carrington appeared in the palm-decorated
foyer of the Castle, a smugly complacent smile
on his face. For he had won the first battle in the war
he was to wage. To be sure, he had been worsted in a
physical encounter with Taylor, as the bruises still on
his face indicated, but he intended to repay Taylor for
that thrashing—and his lips went into an ugly pout when
his thoughts dwelt upon the man.</p>
<p>He had almost forgotten Parsons; he did not think
of the other until about eight o’clock in the evening, when,
with Danforth in the barroom of the Castle, Danforth
mentioned his name. Then Carrington remembered that
he had not seen Parsons since he had throttled the man.
He ordered another drink, not permitting Danforth to
see his eyes, which were glowing with a flame that would
have betrayed him.</p>
<p>“This is good-night,” he said to Danforth as he raised
his glass. “I’ve got to see Parsons tonight.”</p>
<p>Yet it was not Parsons who was uppermost in his mind
when he left the Castle, mounted on his horse; the face
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_156'></SPAN>156</span>
of Marion Harlan was in the mental picture he drew
as he rode toward the Huggins house, and there ran in his
brain a reckless thought—which had been uttered to Parsons
at the instant before his fingers had closed around
the latter’s throat a few days before:</p>
<p>“I was born a thousand years too late, Parsons! I am
a robber baron brought down to date—modernized. I
believe that in me flows the blood of a pirate, a savage, or
an ancient king. I have all the instincts of a tribal chief
whose principles are to rule or ruin! I’ll have no law
out here but my own desires!”</p>
<p>And tonight Carrington’s desires were for the girl who
had accompanied him to Dawes; the girl who had stirred
his passions as no woman had ever stirred them, and who—now
that he had seized the town’s government—was
to be as much his vassal as Parsons, Danforth—or
any of them. He grinned as he rode toward the Huggins
house—a grin that grew to a laugh as he rode up the
drive toward the house; low, vibrant, hideous with its
threat of unrestrained passion.</p>
<p>The night had been too beautiful for Marion Harlan
to remain indoors, and so, after darkness had swathed
the big valley back of the house, she had slipped out,
noting that her uncle had gone again to the chair on the
front porch. She had walked with Parsons along the
butte above the valley, but she wanted to be alone now, to
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_157'></SPAN>157</span>
view the beauties without danger of interruption. Above
all, she wanted to think.</p>
<p>For the news that Parsons had communicated to her
had affected her strangely; she felt that her uncle’s revelations
of Carrington’s character amounted to a vindication
of her own secret opinion of the man.</p>
<p>He had been a volcanic wooer, and she had distrusted
him all along. She had never permitted that distrust to
appear on the surface, however, out of respect for her
uncle—for she had always thought he and Carrington
were firm friends. She saw now, though, that she had
always suspected Carrington of being just what her
uncle’s revelation had proved him to be—a ruthless,
selfish, domineering brute of a man, who would have no
mercy upon any person who got in his way.</p>
<p>Reflecting upon his actions during the days she had
known him in Westwood—and upon his glances when
sometimes she had caught him looking at her, and at other
times when his gaze—bold, and flaming with naked
passion—had been fixed upon her, she shuddered,
comparing him with Quinton Taylor, quiet, polite, and
considerate.</p>
<p>Loyally, she hated Carrington now for the things he
had done to Parsons. She mentally vowed that the next
time she saw Carrington she would tell him exactly what
she thought of him, regardless of the effect her frank
opinion might have on her uncle’s fortunes.
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_158'></SPAN>158</span></p>
<p>But still she had not come to the edge of the butte for
the purpose of devoting her entire thoughts to Carrington;
there was another face that obtruded insistently in
the mental pictures she drew—Quinton Taylor’s. And
she found a grass knoll at the edge of the butte, twisted
around so that she could look over the edge of the butte
and into the big basin that slumbered somberly in the
mysterious darkness, staring intently until she discovered
a pin-point of light gleaming out of it. That light, she
knew, came from one of the windows of the Arrow ranchhouse,
and she watched it long, wondering what Taylor
would be doing about now.</p>
<p>For she was keeping no secrets from herself tonight.
She knew that she liked Taylor better than she had ever
liked any man of her acquaintance.</p>
<p>At first she had told herself that her liking for the man
had been aroused merely because he had been good to her
father. But she knew now that she liked Taylor for himself.
There was no mistaking the nameless longing that
had taken possession of her; the insistent and yearning
desire to be near him; the regret that had affected her
when she had left the Arrow at the end of her last visit.
Taylor would never know how near she had come to accepting
his invitation to share the Arrow with him. Had
it not been for propriety—the same propriety which had
inseparably linked itself with all her actions—which she
must observe punctiliously despite the fact that girls of
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_159'></SPAN>159</span>
her acquaintance had violated it openly without hurt or
damage to their reputations; had it not been that she must
bend to its mandates, because of the shadow that had
always lurked near her, she would have gone to live at
the Arrow.</p>
<p>For she knew that she could have stayed at the Arrow
without danger. Taylor was a gentleman—she knew—and
Taylor would never offend her in the manner the
world affected to dread—and suspect. But she could not
do the things other girls could do—that was why she
had refused Taylor’s invitation.</p>
<p>She had thought she had conquered her aversion for
the big house—the aversion that had been aroused because
of the story Martha had told her regarding its former
inhabitants, but that aversion recurred to her with
disquieting insistence as she sat there on the edge of the
butte.</p>
<p>It seemed to her that the serpent of immorality which
had dragged its trail across hers so many times was never
to leave her, and she found herself wondering about the
house and about Carrington and her uncle.</p>
<p>Carrington had bought the horse for her—Billy; and
she had accepted it after some consideration. But
what if Carrington had bought the house? That would
mean—why, the people of Dawes, if they discovered
it—if Carrington had bought it—might place their own
interpretation upon the fact that she was living in it.
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_160'></SPAN>160</span>
And the interpretation of the people of Dawes would be
no more charitable than that of the people of Westwood!
They would think——</p>
<p>She got up quickly, her face pale, and started toward
the house, determined to ask her uncle.</p>
<p>Walking swiftly toward the front porch, where she
had seen Parsons go, she remembered that Parsons had
told her he had arranged for the house, but that might
not mean that he had personally bought it.</p>
<p>She meant to find out, and if Carrington owned the
house, she would not stay in it another night—not even
tonight.</p>
<p>She was walking fast when she reached the edge of the
porch—almost running; and when she got to the nearest
corner, she saw that the porch was quite vacant; Parsons
must have gone in.</p>
<p>She stood for an instant at the porch-edge, a beam of
silvery moonlight streaming upon her through a break in
the trees overhead, convinced that Parsons had gone to
bed; and convinced, likewise, that, were she to disturb
him now to ask the question that was in her mind, he
would laugh at her.</p>
<p>She decided she would wait until the morning, and
she was about to return to the edge of the butte, when
she realized that it had grown rather late. She had not
noticed how quickly the time had fled.</p>
<p>She turned, intending to enter the house from one of
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_161'></SPAN>161</span>
the rear doors through which she had emerged, when a
sound reached her ears—the rapid drumming of a horse’s
hoofs. She wheeled, facing the direction from which
the sound came—and saw Carrington riding toward her,
not more than fifty feet distant.</p>
<p>He saw her at the instant her gaze rested on him—an
instant before, she surmised, for there was a huge grin
on his face as she turned to him.</p>
<p>He was at her side before she could obey a sudden impulse
to run—for she did not wish to talk to him tonight—and
in another instant he had dismounted and was
standing close to her.</p>
<p>“All alone, eh?” he laughed. “And enjoying the
moon? Do you know that you made a ravishing picture,
standing there with the light shining on you? I saw you
as you started to turn, and I shall remember the picture
all my life! You are more beautiful than ever, girl!”</p>
<p>Carrington was breathing fast. The girl thought he
had been riding hard. But, despite that explanation for
the repressed excitement under which he seemed to be
laboring, the girl thought she detected the presence of restrained
passion in his eyes, and she shrank back a little.</p>
<p>She had often seen passion in his eyes, identical with
what glowed in them now, but she had always felt a certain
immunity, a masterfulness over him that had permitted
her to feel that she could repulse him at will.
Now, however, she felt a sudden, cringing dread of him.
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_162'></SPAN>162</span>
The dread, no doubt, was provoked by her uncle’s revelation
of the man’s character; and, for the first time during
her acquaintance with Carrington, she felt a fear of him,
and became aware of the overpowering force and virility
of the man.</p>
<p>Her voice was a little tremulous when she answered:</p>
<p>“I was looking for Uncle Elam. He must have
gone in.”</p>
<p>His face was not very distinct to her, for he was standing
in a shadow cast by a near-by tree, and she could not
see the bruises that marred the flesh, but it seemed to her
that his face had never seemed so repulsive. And the
significance of his grin made her gasp.</p>
<p>“That’s good. I’m glad he did go in; I did not come
to see Parsons.”</p>
<p>She had meant to take him to task for what he had
done to her uncle, but there was something in his voice
that made thoughts of defending Parsons seem futile—a
need gone in the necessity to conserve her voice and
strength for an imminent crisis.</p>
<p>For Carrington’s voice, thick and vibrant, smote her
with a presentiment of danger to herself. She looked
sharply at him, saw that his face was red and bloated
with passion and, taking a backward step, she said shortly:</p>
<p>“I must go in. I—I promised Martha——”</p>
<p>His voice interrupted her; she felt one of his hands on
her arm, the fingers gripping it tightly.
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_163'></SPAN>163</span></p>
<p>“No, you don’t,” he said, hoarsely; “I came here to
have a talk with you, and I mean to have it!”</p>
<p>“What do you mean?” she asked. She was rigid and
erect, but she could not keep the quaver out of her voice.</p>
<p>“Playing the innocent, eh?” he mocked, his voice dry
and light. “You’ve played innocent ever since I saw you
the first time. It doesn’t go anymore. You’re going to
face the music.” He thrust his face close to hers and
the expression of his eyes thrilled her with horror.</p>
<p>“What do you suppose I brought you here for?” he
demanded. “I’ll tell you. I bought the house for you.
Parsons knows why—Dawes knows why—everybody
knows. You ought to know—you shall know.” He
laughed, sneeringly. “Westwood could tell you, or the
woman who lived in the Huggins house before you came.
Martha could tell you—she lived here——”</p>
<p>He heard her draw her breath sharply and he mocked
her, gloating:</p>
<p>“Ah, Martha has told you! Well, you’ve got to face
the music, I tell you! I’ve got things going my way here—the
way I’ve wanted things to go since I’ve been old
enough to realize what life is. I’ve got the governor, the
mayor, the judges—everything—with me, and I’m
going to rule. I’m going to rule, my way! If you are
sensible, you’ll have things pretty easy; but if you’re
going to try to balk me you’re going to pay—plenty!”</p>
<p>She did not answer, standing rigid in his grasp, her
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_164'></SPAN>164</span>
face chalk-white. He did not notice her pallor, nor how
she stood, paralyzed with dread; and he thought because
of her silence that she was going to passively submit.
He thought victory was near, and he was going to be
magnanimous in his moment of triumph.</p>
<p>His grip on her arm relaxed and he leaned forward
to whisper:</p>
<p>“That’s the girl. No fuss, no heroics. We’ll get
along; we’ll——”</p>
<p>Her right hand struck his face—a full sweep of the
arm behind it—burning, stinging, sending him staggering
back a little from its very unexpectedness. And
before he could make a move to recover his equilibrium
she had gone like a flash of light, as elusive as the moonbeam
in which she had stood when he had first come
upon her.</p>
<p>He cursed gutturally and leaped forward, running with
great leaps toward the rear of the house, where he had
seen her vanish. He reached the door through which she
had gone, finding it closed and locked against him. Stepping
back a little, he hurled himself against the door,
sending it crashing from its hinges, so that he tumbled
headlong into the room and sprawled upon the floor. He
was up in an instant, tossing the wreck of the door from
him, breathing heavily, cursing frightfully; for he had
completely lost his senses and was in the grip of an insane
rage over the knowledge that she had tricked him.
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_165'></SPAN>165</span></p>
<p>Parsons heard the crash as the door went from its
hinges. He got out of bed in a tremor of fear and opened
the door of his room, peering into the big room that adjoined
the dining-room. From the direction of the
kitchen he caught a thin shaft of light—from the kerosene-lamp
that Martha had placed on a table for Marion’s
convenience. A big form blotted out the light, casting a
huge, gigantic shadow; and Parsons saw the shadow on
the ceiling of the room into which he looked.</p>
<p>Huge as the shadow was, Parsons had no difficulty in
recognizing it as belonging to Carrington; and with chattering
teeth Parsons quickly closed his door, locked it,
and stood against it, his knees knocking together.</p>
<p>Martha, too, had heard the crash. She bounded out of
bed and ran to the door of her room, swinging it wide,
for instinct told her something had happened to Marion.
Her room was closer to the kitchen, and she saw Carrington
plainly, as he was rising from the débris. And she
was just in time to see Marion slipping through the doorway
of her own room. And by the time Carrington got
to his feet, Martha had heard Marion’s door click shut,
heard the lock snap home.</p>
<p>Martha instantly closed the door of her own room,
fastened it and ran to another door that connected her
room with Marion’s. She swung that door open and
looked into the girl’s room; heard the girl stifle a shriek—for
the girl thought Carrington was coming upon her
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_166'></SPAN>166</span>
from that direction—and then Martha was at the girl’s
side, whispering to her—excitedly comforting her.</p>
<p>“The damn trash—houndin’ you this way! He ain’
goin’ to hurt you, honey—not one bit!”</p>
<p>Outside the door they could hear Carrington walking
about in the room. There came to the ears of the two
women the scratch of a match, and then a steady glimmer
of light streaked into the room from the bottom of the
door, and they knew Carrington had lighted a lamp. A
little later, while Martha stood, her arms around the girl,
who leaned against the negro woman, very white and
still, they heard Carrington talking with Parsons. They
heard Parsons protesting, Carrington cursing him.</p>
<p>“He ain’ goin’ to git you, honey,” whispered Martha.
“That man come heah the firs’ day, an’ I knowed he’s a
rapscallion.” She pointed upward, to where a trap-door,
partly open, appeared in the ceiling of the room.</p>
<p>“There’s the attic, honey. I’ll boost you, an’ you go
up there an’ hide from that wild man. You got to, for
that worfless Parsons am tellin’ him which room you’s in.
You hurry—you heah me!”</p>
<p>She helped the girl upward, and stood listening until
the trap-door grated shut. Then she turned and grinned
at the door that led into the big room adjoining the
kitchen. Carrington was at it, his shoulder against it;
Martha could hear him cursing.</p>
<p>“Open up, here!” came Carrington’s voice through
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_167'></SPAN>167</span>
the door, muffled, but resonant. “Open the door, damn
you, or I’ll tear it down!”</p>
<p>“Tear away, white man!” giggled Martha softly.
“They’s a big ’sprise waitin’ you when you git in heah!”</p>
<p>For an instant following Carrington’s curses and demands
there was a silence. It was broken by a splintering
crash, and the negro woman saw the door split so that
the light from the other room streaked through it. But
the door held, momentarily. Then Carrington again
lunged against it and it burst open, pieces of the lock
flying across the room.</p>
<p>This time Carrington did not fall with the door, but
reeled through the opening, erect, big, a vibrant, mirthless
laugh on his lips.</p>
<p>The light from the other room streamed in past him,
shining full upon Martha, who stood, her hands on her
hips, looking at the man.</p>
<p>Carrington was disconcerted by the presence of Martha
when he had expected to see Marion. He stepped back,
cursing.</p>
<p>Martha giggled softly.</p>
<p>“What you doin’ in my room, man; just when I’se
goin’ to retiah? You git out o’ heah—quick! Yo’ heah
me? Yo’ ain’t got no business bustin’ my door down!”</p>
<p>“Bah!” Carrington’s voice was malignant with baffled
rage. With one step he was at Martha’s side, his
hands on her throat, his muscles rigid and straining.
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_168'></SPAN>168</span></p>
<p>“Where’s Marion Harlan?” he demanded. “Tell me,
you black devil, or I’ll choke hell out of you!”</p>
<p>Martha was not frightened; she giggled mockingly.</p>
<p>“That girl bust in heah a minute ago; then she bust
out ag’in, runnin’ fit to kill herself. I reckon by this time
she’s done throw herself off the butte—rather than have
you git her!”</p>
<p>Carrington shoved Martha from him, so that she staggered
and fell; and with a bound he was through the
door that led into Martha’s room.</p>
<p>The negro woman did not move. She sat on the floor,
a malicious grin on her face, listening to Carrington as he
raged through the house.</p>
<p>Once, about five minutes after he left, Carrington returned
and stuck his head into the room. Martha still
sat where Carrington had thrown her. She did not care
what Carrington did to the house, so long as he was
ignorant of the existence of the trap-door.</p>
<p>And Carrington did not notice the door. For an hour
Martha heard him raging around the house, opening and
slamming doors and overturning furniture. Once when
she did not hear him for several minutes, she got up and
went to one of the windows. She saw him, out at the
stable, looking in at the horses.</p>
<p>Then he returned to the house, and Martha resumed
her place on the floor. Later, she heard Carrington enter
the house again, and after that she heard Parsons’ voice,
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_169'></SPAN>169</span>
raised in high-terrored protest. Then there was another
silence. Again Martha looked out of a window. This
time she saw Carrington on his horse, riding away.</p>
<p>But for half an hour Martha remained at the window.
She feared Carrington’s departure was a subterfuge, and
she was not mistaken. For a little later Carrington returned,
riding swiftly. He slid from his horse at a little
distance from the house and ran toward it. Martha was
in the kitchen when he came in. He did not speak to her
as he came into the room, but passed her and again made
a search of the house. Passing Martha again he gave
her a malevolent look, then halted at the outside door.</p>
<p>The man’s wild rage seemed to have left him; he was
calm—polite, even.</p>
<p>“Tell your mistress I am sorry for what has occurred.
I am afraid I was a bit excited. I shall not harm her; I
won’t bother her again.”</p>
<p>He stepped through the doorway and, going again to a
window and drawing back the curtain slightly, Martha
watched him.</p>
<p>Carrington went to the stable, entered, and emerged
again presently, leading two horses—Parsons’ horse and
Billy. He led the animals to where his own horse stood,
climbed into the saddle and rode away, the two horses
following. At the edge of the wood he turned and looked
back. Then the darkness swallowed him.</p>
<p>For another half-hour Martha watched the Dawes trail
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_170'></SPAN>170</span>
from a window. Then she drew a deep breath and went
into Marion’s room, standing under the trap-door.</p>
<p>“I reckon you kin come down now, honey—he’s
gone.”</p>
<p>A little later, with Marion standing near her in the
room, the light from the kerosene-lamp streaming upon
them through the shattered door, Martha was speaking
rapidly:</p>
<p>“He acted mighty suspicious, honey; an’ he’s up to
some dog’s trick, shuah as you’m alive. You got to git
out of heah, honey—mighty quick! ‘Pears he thinks
you is hid somewhares around heah, an’ he’s figgerin’ on
makin’ you stay heah. An’ if you wants to git away,
you’s got to walk, for he’s took the hosses!” She shook
her head, her eyes wide with a reflection of the complete
stupefaction that had descended upon her. “Laws
A’mighty, what a ragin’ devil that man is, honey! I’se
seen men <em>an’</em> men—an’ I knowed a nigger once that
was——”</p>
<p>But Martha paused, for Marion was paying no attention
to her. The girl was pulling some articles of wearing
apparel from some drawers, packing them hurriedly
into a small handbag, and Martha sprang quickly to help
her, divining what the girl intended to do.</p>
<p>“That’s right, honey; doan you stay heah in this house
another minit! You git out as quick as you kin. You
go right over to that Squint man’s house an’ tell him to
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_171'></SPAN>171</span>
protect you. ’Cause you’s goin’ to need protection, honey—an’
don’t you forgit it!”</p>
<p>The girl’s white face was an eloquent sign of her conception
of the danger that confronted her. But she spoke
no word while packing her handbag. When she was
ready she turned to the door, to confront Martha, who
also carried a satchel. Together the two went out of the
house, crossed the level surrounding it, and began to
descend the long slope that led down into the mighty
basin in which, some hours before, the girl had seen the
pin-point of light glimmering across the sea of darkness
toward her. And toward that light, as toward a beacon
that promised a haven from a storm, she went, Martha
following.</p>
<p>From a window of the house a man watched them—Parsons—in
the grip of a paralyzing terror, his pallid
face pressed tightly against the glass of the window as he
watched until he could see them no longer.</p>
<h2><span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_172'></SPAN>172</span><SPAN name='chXVII' id='chXVII'></SPAN>CHAPTER XVII—THE WRONG ANKLE</h2>
<p>Bud Hemmingway, the tall, red-faced young
puncher who had assisted Quinton Taylor in the
sprained-ankle deception, saw the dawn breaking through
one of the windows of the bunkhouse when he suddenly
opened his eyes after dreaming of steaming flapjacks
soaked in the sirup he liked best. He stretched out on his
back in the wall-bunk and licked his lips.</p>
<p>“Lordy, I’m hungry!”</p>
<p>But he decided to rest for a few minutes while he considered
the cook—away with the outfit to a distant corner
of the range.</p>
<p>He reflected bitterly that the cook was away most of
the time, and that a man fared considerably better with
the outfit than he did by staying at the home ranch. For
one thing, when a man was with the outfit he got “grub,”
without having to rustle it himself—that was why it was
better to be with the outfit.</p>
<p>“A man don’t git nothin’ to eat at all, scarcely—when
he’s got to rustle his own grub,” mourned Bud. “He’s
got the appetite, all right, but he don’t know how to rassle
the ingredients which goes into good grub. Take them
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_173'></SPAN>173</span>
flapjacks, now.” (He licked his lips again.) “They’re
scrumptuous. But that damned hyena which slings grub
for the outfit won’t tell a man how he makes ’em, which
greediness is goin’ to git him into a heap of trouble some
day—when I git so hungry that I feel a heap reckless!”</p>
<p>Bud watched the dawn broaden. He knew he ought to
get up, for this was the day on which Marion Harlan was
to visit the Arrow—and Taylor had warned him to be
on hand early to bandage the ankle again—Taylor having
decided that not enough time had elapsed to effect a cure.</p>
<p>But Bud did not get up until a glowing shaft entering
the window warned him that the sun was soon to appear
above the horizon. Then he bounded out of the bunk and
lurched heavily to an east window.</p>
<p>What he saw when he looked out made him gasp for
breath and hang hard to the window-sill, while his eyes
bulged and widened with astonishment. For upon the
porch of the ranchhouse—seated in the identical chairs in
which they had sat during their previous visit, were
Marion Harlan and the negro woman!</p>
<p>Bud stepped back from the window and rubbed his
eyes. Then he went to the window again and looked with
all his vision. And then a grin covered his face.</p>
<p>For the two women seemed to be asleep. Bud would
have sworn they were asleep! For the negress was
hunched up in her chair—a big, almost shapeless black
mass—with her chin hidden in the swell of her ample
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_174'></SPAN>174</span>
bosom; while the girl was leaning back, her figure slack
with the utter relaxation that accompanies deep sleep, her
eyes closed and her hat a little awry. Bud was certain <em>she</em>
was asleep, for no girl in her waking moments would permit
her hat to rest upon her head in that negligent manner.</p>
<p>Bad scratched his head many times while hurriedly
getting into his clothing.</p>
<p>“I’m bettin’ <em>they</em> didn’t wait for flapjacks <em>this</em> morning!”
he confided to himself, mentally. “Must like it
here a heap,” he reflected. “Well, there’s nothin’ like
gittin’ an early start when you’re goin’ anywhere!” he
grinned.</p>
<p>Stealthily he opened the door of the bunkhouse, watching
furtively as he stepped out, lest he be seen; and then
when he noted that the women did not move, he darted
across the yard, vaulted the corral fence, ran around the
corner of the ranchhouse, carefully opened a rear door,
and presently stood beside a bed gently shaking its tousled-haired
occupant.</p>
<p>“Git up, you sufferin’ fool!” he whispered hoarsely;
“they’re here!”</p>
<p>Taylor’s eyes snapped open and were fixed on Bud with
a resentful glare, which instantly changed to reserved
amusement when he saw Bud’s bulging eyes and general
evidence of suppressed excitement.</p>
<p>He yawned sleepily, stretching his arms wide.</p>
<p>“The outfit, eh? Well, tell Bothwell I’ll see him——”
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_175'></SPAN>175</span></p>
<p>“Bothwell, hell!” sneered Bud. “It ain’t the outfit!
It ain’t no damned range boss! It’s <em>her</em>, I tell you! An’
if you’re figgerin’ on gittin’ that ankle bandaged before— That
starts you to runnin’, eh?” he jeered.</p>
<p>For Taylor was out of bed with one leap. In another
he had Bud by the shoulders and had crowded him back
against the wall.</p>
<p>“Bud,” he said, “I’ve a notion to manhandle you!
Didn’t I tell you to have me up early?”</p>
<p>“Git your fingers out of my windpipe,” objected Bud.
“Early! Sufferin’ shorthorns! Did you want me to git
you up last night? It’s only four, now—an’ they’ve been
here for hours, I reckon—mebbe all night. How’s a man
to know anything about a woman?”</p>
<p>Taylor was getting into his clothes. Bud watched him,
marveling at his deft movements. “You’re sure a wolf at
hustlin’ when <em>she’s</em> around!” he offered.</p>
<p>But he got no reply. Taylor was dressed in a miraculously
short time, and then he sat down on the edge of the
bed and stuck a foot out toward Bud.</p>
<p>“Shut up, and get the bandage on!” he directed.</p>
<p>Bud dove for a dresser and pulled out a drawer, returning
instantly with a roll of white cloth, which he unfolded
as he knelt beside the bed. For an instant after kneeling
he scratched his head, looking at Taylor’s feet in perplexity,
and then he looked up at Taylor, his face thoughtfully
furrowed.
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_176'></SPAN>176</span></p>
<p>“Which ankle was it I bandaged before?” he demanded;
“I’ve forgot!”</p>
<p>Taylor groaned. He, too, had forgotten. Since he had
talked with Neil Norton about the ankle directly after
the fight with Carrington in front of the courthouse he
had tried in vain to remember which ankle he had bandaged
for Miss Harlan’s benefit. Driven to the necessity
of making a quick decision, his brain became a mere
muddle of desperate conjecture. Out of the muddle
sprang a disgust for Bud for <em>his</em> poor memory.</p>
<p>“You’ve forgot!” he blurted at Bud. “Why, damn it,
you ought to know which one it was—you bandaged it!”</p>
<p>“Well,” grinned Bud gleefully, “it was <em>your</em> ankle,
wasn’t it? Strikes me that if I busted one of <em>my</em> ankles I
wouldn’t forget which one it was! Leastways, if I’d
busted it just to hang around a girl!”</p>
<p>Taylor sneered scornfully. “You wouldn’t bust an
ankle for a girl—you ain’t got backbone enough. Hell!”
he exploded; “do something! Take a chance and bandage
one of them—I don’t care a damn which one! If
she noticed the other time, I’ll tell her that one was cured
and I busted the other one!”</p>
<p>“She’d know you was lyin’,” grinned Bud. He stood
erect, his eyes alight with an inspiration. “Wrap up both
of ’em!” he suggested. “If she goes to gittin’ curious—which
she will, bein’ a woman—tell her you busted both
of ’em!”
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_177'></SPAN>177</span></p>
<p>“It won’t do,” objected Taylor; “I couldn’t lie that
heavy an’ keep a straight face.”</p>
<p>Bud began to wrap the left ankle. As he worked, the
doubt in his eyes began to fade and was succeeded by conviction.
When he finished, he stood up and grinned at
Taylor.</p>
<p>“That’s the one,” he said; “the left. I mind, now, that
we talked about it. You go right out to her, limpin’, the
same as you done before, an’ she’ll not say a word about
it. You’ll see.”</p>
<p>Taylor grunted disbelievingly, and hobbled to the front
door. He looked back at Bud, who was snickering, made
a malicious grimace at him, and softly opened the door.</p>
<p>Miss Harlan had been asleep, but she was not asleep
when Taylor opened the door. Indeed, she was never
more wide awake in her life. At the sound of the door
opening she turned her head and sat stiffly erect, to face
Taylor.</p>
<p>Taylor looked apologetically at his ankle, his cheeks
tinged with a flush of embarrassment.</p>
<p>“This ankle, ma’am—it ain’t quite well yet. You’ll
excuse me not being gone. But Bud—that’s my friend—says
it won’t be quite right for a few days yet. But I
won’t be in your way—and I hope you enjoy yourself.”</p>
<p>Miss Harlan was enjoying herself. She was enjoying
herself despite the shadow of the tragedy that had almost
descended upon her. And mirth, routing the bitter,
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_178'></SPAN>178</span>
resentful emotions that had dwelt in her heart during the
night, twitched mightily at her lips and threatened to
curve them into a smile.</p>
<p>For during her last visit to the Arrow she had noted
particularly that it had been Taylor’s <em>right</em> ankle which
had been bandaged, and now he appeared before her with
the <em>left</em> swathed in white cloth!</p>
<p>But even had she not known, Taylor’s face must have
told her of the deception. For there was guilt in his eyes,
and doubt, and a sort of breathless speculation, and—she
was certain—an intense curiosity to discover whether or
not she was aware of the trick.</p>
<p>But she looked straight at him, betraying nothing of the
emotions that had seized her.</p>
<p>“Does it pain you <em>very</em> much?” she inquired.</p>
<p>Had not Taylor been so eager to make his case strong,
he might have noted the exceedingly light sarcasm of her
voice.</p>
<p>“It hurts a heap, ma’am,” he declared. “Why, last
night——”</p>
<p>“I shouldn’t think it would be necessary to lie about an
ankle,” she said, coldly.</p>
<p>Taylor’s face went crimson, and in his astonishment he
stepped heavily upon the traitor foot and stood, convicted,
before her, looking very much like a reproved schoolboy.</p>
<p>She rose from her chair, and now she turned from Taylor
and stood looking out over the big level, while behind
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_179'></SPAN>179</span>
her Taylor shifted his feet, scowled and felt decidedly
uncomfortable.</p>
<p>From where Taylor watched her she looked very rigid
and indignant—with her head proudly erect and her
shoulders squared; and he could almost <em>feel</em> that her eyes
were flashing with resentment.</p>
<p>Yet had he been able to see her face, he would have
seen her lips twitching and her eyes dancing with a light
that might have puzzled him. For she had already
forgiven him.</p>
<p>“There’s lies—<em>and</em> lies,” he offered palliatively, breaking
a painful silence.</p>
<p>There was no answer, and Taylor, desperately in earnest
in his desire for forgiveness, and looking decidedly
funny to Bud Hemmingway, who was watching from
the interior of the room beyond the open door, walked
across the porch with no suspicion of a limp, and halted
near the girl.</p>
<p>“Shucks, Miss Harlan,” he said. “I’m sure caught;
and I’m admitting it was a sort of mean trick to pull off
on you. But if you wanted to be near a girl you’d taken
a shine to—that you liked a whole lot, I mean, Miss
Harlan—and you couldn’t think of any <em>good</em> excuse to
be around her? You couldn’t blame a man for that—could
you? Besides,” he added, when peering at the side
of her face, he saw the twitching lips, ready to break
into a smile, “I’ll make it up to you!”
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_180'></SPAN>180</span></p>
<p>“How?” It was a strained voice that answered him.</p>
<p>“By manhandling Bud Hemmingway for wrapping
up the wrong ankle, ma’am!” he declared.</p>
<p>Both heard a cackle of mirth from the room behind
them. And both turned, to see Bud Hemmingway retreating
through a door into the kitchen.</p>
<p>It might have been Bud’s action that brought the smile
to Miss Harlan’s face, or it might have been that she
had forgiven Taylor. But at any rate Taylor read the
smile correctly, and he succeeded in looking properly
repentant when he felt Miss Harlan’s gaze upon him.</p>
<p>“I won’t play any more tricks—on you,” he declared.
“You ain’t holding it against me?”</p>
<p>“If you will promise not to harm Bud,” she said.</p>
<p>“That goes,” he agreed, and went into the house to
get his discarded boot.</p>
<p>When he reappeared, Miss Harlan was again seated
in the chair. Swiftly her thoughts had reverted to the
incident of the night before, and her face was wan and
pale, and her lips pressed tightly together in a brave
effort to repress the emotions that rioted within her. In
spite of her courage, and of her determination not to let
Taylor know of what had happened to her, her eyes were
moist and her lips quivering.</p>
<p>He stepped close to her and peered sharply at her,
standing erect instantly, his face grave.</p>
<p>“Shucks!” he said, accusingly; “I wouldn’t be called
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_181'></SPAN>181</span>
hospitable—now, would I? Standing here, talking a
lot of nonsense, and you—you must have started <em>early</em>
to get here by this time!” Again he flashed a keen
glance at her, and his voice leaped.</p>
<p>“Something has happened, Miss Harlan! What is it?”</p>
<p>She got up again and faced him, smiling, her eyes shining
mistily through the moisture in them. She was almost
on the verge of tears, and her voice was tremulous when
she answered:</p>
<p>“Mr. Taylor, I—I have come to ask if you—still—if
your offer about the Arrow is still open—if—I could
stay here—myself and Martha; if I could accept the offer
you made about giving me father’s share of the Arrow.
For—for—I can’t go back East—to Westwood, and
I won’t stay in the Huggins house a minute longer!”</p>
<p>“Sure!” he said, with a grim smile, aware of her
profound emotion; aware, too, that something had gone
terribly wrong with her—to make her accept what she
had once considered charity—an offer made out of his
regard for her father.</p>
<p>“But, look here,” he added. “What’s wrong? There’s
something——”</p>
<p>“Plenty, Mr. Squint.”</p>
<p>This was Martha. She had been awake for some little
time, sitting back with her eyes closed, listening. She
was now sitting erect, her eyes shining with eagerness
to tell all she knew of the night’s happenings.
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_182'></SPAN>182</span></p>
<p>“Plenty, Mr. Squint,” she repeated, paying no attention
to Miss Harlan’s sharp, “Martha!” “That big
rapscallion, Carrington, has been makin’ things mighty
mis’able for Missy Harlan. He come to the house las’
night an’ bust the door down, tryin’ to git at missy, an’
she’s run away from him like a whitehead. Then, when
he finds he can’t diskiver where I hide missy he run the
hosses off an’ we have to walk heah. That’s all, Mr.
Squint, ’ceptin’ that me an’ missy doan stay in that house
no more—if we have to walk East—all the way!”</p>
<p>Miss Harlan saw a flash light Taylor’s eyes; saw the
flash recede, to be replaced by a chilling glow. And his
lips grew straight and stiff—two hard lines pressed
firmly together. She saw his chest swell and noted the
tenseness of his muscles as he stepped closer to her.</p>
<p>“Was your uncle there with you, Miss Harlan?”</p>
<p>She nodded, and saw his lips curve with a mirthless
smile.</p>
<p>“What did Carrington do?” The passion in his voice
made an icy shiver run over her—she felt the terrible
earnestness that had come over him, and a pulse of fear
gripped her.</p>
<p>She had never felt more like crying than at this instant,
and until this minute she had not known how deeply she
had been affected by Carrington’s conduct, nor how tired
she was, nor how she had yearned for the sympathy
Taylor was giving her. But she felt that something in
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_183'></SPAN>183</span>
Taylor’s manner portended violence, and she did not want
him to risk his life fighting Carrington—for her.</p>
<p>“You see,” she explained, “Mr. Carrington did not
really <em>do</em> anything. He just came there, and was impertinent,
and impudent, and insulting. And he told me
that he had bought the house; that it didn’t belong to uncle—though
I thought it did; and that the people of
Dawes—and everywhere—would think—things—about
me—as the people of Westwood had—thought.
And I—I—why, I just couldn’t stay——”</p>
<p>“That’s enough, Miss Harlan. So Carrington didn’t
do anything.” His voice was vibrant with some sternly
repressed passion.</p>
<p>“So you walked all the way here, and you have had
no breakfast,” he said, shortly. He turned toward the
front door, his voice snapping like the report of a rifle:</p>
<p>“Bud!”</p>
<p>And, looking through the doorway, Miss Harlan saw
Bud jump as though he had been shot. He appeared
in the doorway, serious-faced and alert.</p>
<p>“Rustle some breakfast—quick! And hoe out that
spare bedroom. Jump!”</p>
<p>Taylor understood perfectly what had happened, for
he remembered what he had overheard between Carrington
and Parsons on the train. To be sure, Miss Harlan knew
nothing about the conversation, and so she mentally commended
Taylor’s quickness of perception, and felt grateful
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_184'></SPAN>184</span>
to him because he had spared her the horror of
explaining further.</p>
<p>She sat down again, aware of the startling unconventionality
of this visit and of the conversation that had
resulted from it, but oppressed with no sense of shame.
For it seemed entirely natural that she should have come
to Taylor, though she supposed that was because he had
been her father’s friend, and that she had no other person
to go to—not even if she went East, to Westwood. But
she would not have mentioned what had happened at the
big house if Martha had not taken the initiative.</p>
<p>She was startled over the change that had come in
Taylor. Watching him covertly as he stood near her,
and following his movements as he walked around in the
room, helping Bud, generously leaving her to herself
and her thoughts, she looked in vain for that gentleness
and subtle thoughtfulness that hitherto had seemed to
distinguish him. She had admired him for his easy-going
manner, the slow deliberateness of his glances, the
quizzical gleam of his eyes.</p>
<p>But she saw him now as many of the men in this section
of the country had seen him when he faced the necessity
for rapid, determined action. It was the other side
of his character; before she had heard his voice, and
before she had seen him smile—the stern, unyielding side
of him which she had discovered always was ready for
the blows of adversity and enmity—his fighting side.
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_185'></SPAN>185</span></p>
<p>And when she went into the house to breakfast, feeling
the strangeness of it all—of the odd fate which had led
her to the Arrow; the queer reluctance that affected her
over the action in accepting the hospitality of a man who—except
for his association with her father—was almost
a stranger to her—she found that he did not intend to
insinuate his presence upon her.</p>
<p>He called her, and stood near the table when she and
Martha went in. Then he told her gravely that the house
was “hers,” and that he and Bud would live in the
bunkhouse.</p>
<p>“And when you get settled,” he told her, as he stood
in the doorway, ready to go, “we’ll write those articles
of partnership. And,” he added, “don’t you go to worrying
about Carrington. If he comes here, and Bud or me
ain’t here, you’ll find a loaded rifle hanging behind the
front door. Don’t be afraid to use it—there’s no law
against killing snakes out here!”</p>
<h2><span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_186'></SPAN>186</span><SPAN name='chXVIII' id='chXVIII'></SPAN>CHAPTER XVIII—THE BEAST AGAIN</h2>
<p>Carrington was conscious of the error his
unrestrained passion had driven him to committing.
Yet he had not been sincere when he had declared to
Martha that he wouldn’t bother the girl again. For after
leading the two horses to Dawes and arranging for their
care, he hunted up Danforth. It was nearly midnight
when Danforth reached Carrington’s rooms in the Castle,
and Carrington was in a sullen mood.</p>
<p>“I want two or three men who will do what they are
told and keep their mouths shut,” he told Danforth. “Get
them—quick—and send them to the Huggins house—mine,
now—and have them stay there. Nobody is to
leave the house—not even to come to town. Understand?
Not even Parsons. Hustle! There is no train
out of here tonight? No? Well, that’s all right. Get
going!”</p>
<p>Danforth had noticed Carrington’s sullenness, and the
strained excitement of his manner, and there was in Danforth’s
mind an inclination to warn Carrington about including
the woman in the scheme to subjugate Dawes—for
he knew Carrington of old; but a certain light in the
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_187'></SPAN>187</span>
big man’s eyes warned Danforth and he shut his half-opened
lips and departed on his errand.</p>
<p>In an hour he returned, telling Carrington that his
orders had been obeyed.</p>
<p>Danforth seated himself in a chair near one of the
front windows and waited, for he knew Carrington still
had something to say to him—the man’s eyes told him,
for they were alight with a cold, speculative gleam as they
rested on Danforth.</p>
<p>At last, after a silence that lasted long, Carrington said,
shortly:</p>
<p>“What do you know about Taylor?”</p>
<p>“What I told you before—the first day. And that
isn’t much.”</p>
<p>“I had a talk with Parsons the other day—about
Larry Harlan,” said Carrington. “It seems that Larry
Harlan worked for Taylor—for two or three years.
I didn’t question Parsons closely about the connection
between Taylor and Harlan, but it seems to me that Parsons
mentioned a mine. What about it? Do you know
anything about it?”</p>
<p>Danforth related what he knew regarding the incident
of the mine—the story told by Taylor when he
returned after Larry Harlan’s death—and Carrington’s
eyes gleamed with interest.</p>
<p>“Do you think he told a straight story?” he asked.</p>
<p>He watched Danforth intently.
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_188'></SPAN>188</span></p>
<p>“Hell, yes!” declared the other. “He’s too square
to lie!”</p>
<p>Five minutes later Carrington said good-night to Danforth.
But Carrington did not immediately go to bed;
he sat for a long time in a chair near the window looking
out at the buildings of Dawes.</p>
<p>In the courtroom early the next morning he leaned over
Judge Littlefield’s desk, smiling.</p>
<p>“Did you ever hear of Quinton Taylor being connected
with a mining venture?”</p>
<p>“Well, rather.”</p>
<p>“Where?”</p>
<p>“At Nogel—in the Sangre de Christo Mountains.”</p>
<p>“How far is that?”</p>
<p>“About ten miles—due west.”</p>
<p>“What do you know about the mine?”</p>
<p>“Very little. Taylor and a man named Lawrence Harlan
registered the claim here. I heard that Harlan died—was
killed in an accident. Soon afterward, Taylor sold
the mine—to a man named Thornton—for a consideration,
not mentioned.” The judge looked sharply at
Carrington. “Why this inquiry?” he asked; “do you
think there is anything wrong about the transaction?”</p>
<p>“There is no determining that until an investigation
is made.” Carrington laughed as he left the judge.</p>
<p>Later he got on his horse and rode to the big house.
On the front porch, seated in a chair, smoking, he saw
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_189'></SPAN>189</span>
one of the men Danforth had sent in obedience to his
order; at the rear of the house was another; and, lounging
carelessly on the grass near the edge of the butte
fringing the big valley, he saw still another—men who
seemed to find their work agreeable, for they grinned
at Carrington when he rode up.</p>
<p>Carrington dismounted and entered the house—by one
of the rear doors—which he had wrecked the night before.
He went in boldly, grinning, for he anticipated that
by this time Marion Harlan would have reached that stage
of intimidation where she would no longer resist him.</p>
<p>At first he was only mildly disturbed at the appearance
of the interior; for nothing had been done to bring order
out of the chaos he had created the night before, and the
condition of the furniture, and the atmosphere of gloomy
emptiness that greeted him indicated nothing. The terror
under which the girl had labored during the night might
still be gripping her.</p>
<p>He had no suspicion that the girl had left the house
until after he had looked into all the rooms but the one
occupied by Parsons. Then a conviction that she <em>had</em>
fled seized him; he scowled and leaped to the door of
Parsons’ room, pounding heavily upon it.</p>
<p>Parsons did not answer his knock, and an instant later,
when Carrington forced the door and stepped into the
room, he saw Parsons standing near a window, pallid
and shaking.
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_190'></SPAN>190</span></p>
<p>With a bound Carrington reached Parsons’ side and
gripped the man by the collar of his coat.</p>
<p>“Where’s Miss Harlan?” he demanded. He noted
that Parsons swayed in his grasp, and he peered at the
other with a malignant joy. He had always hated Parsons,
tolerating him because of Parsons’ money.</p>
<p>“She’s gone,” whispered Parsons tremulously. “I—I
tried to stop her, knowing you wouldn’t want it, but—she
went away—anyway.”</p>
<p>“Where?” Carrington’s fingers were gripping Parsons’
shoulder near the throat with a bitter, viselike
strength that made the man cringe and groan from the
pain of it.</p>
<p>“Don’t, Jim; for God’s sake, don’t! You’re hurting
me! I—I couldn’t help it; I couldn’t stop her!”</p>
<p>The abject, terrified appeal in his eyes; the fawning,
doglike subjection of his manner, enraged Carrington.
He shook the little man with a force that racked the
other from head to heel.</p>
<p>“Where did she go—damn you!”</p>
<p>“To the Arrow.”</p>
<p>Aroused to desperation by the flaming fury that blazed
in Carrington’s eyes, Parsons tried to wrench himself
free, tugging desperately, and whining: “Don’t, Jim!”
For he knew that he was to be punished for his dereliction.</p>
<p>He shrieked when Carrington struck him; a sound
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_191'></SPAN>191</span>
which died in his throat as the blow landed. Carrington
left him lie where he fell, and went out to the men, interrogating
the one he had seen on the front porch.</p>
<p>From that person he learned that no one had left the
house since the men had come; so that Carrington knew
Marion must have departed soon after he had left the
night before—or some time during the time of his
departure and the arrival of the men.</p>
<p>Ten minutes after emerging from the house he went
in again. Parsons was sitting on the floor of his room,
swaying weakly back and forth, whining tonelessly, his
lips loose and drooling blood.</p>
<p>For an instant Carrington stood over him, looking
down at him with a merciless, tigerlike grin. Then he
stooped, gripped Parsons by the shoulders, and, lifting
him bodily, threw him across the bed. Parsons did not
resist, but lay, his arms flung wide, watching the big
man fearfully.</p>
<p>“Don’t hit me again, Jim!” he pleaded. “Jim, I’ve
never done anything to you!”</p>
<p>“Bah!” Carrington leaned over the other, grinning
malevolently.</p>
<p>“You’ve double-crossed me, Elam,” he said silkily.
“You’re through. Get out of here before I kill you!
I want to; and if you are here in five minutes, I shall kill
you! Go to the Arrow—with your niece. Tell her
what you know about me—if you haven’t done so already.
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_192'></SPAN>192</span>
And tell her that I am coming for her—and for
Taylor, too! Now, get out!”</p>
<p>In less than five minutes, while Carrington was at the
front of the house talking with the three men, Parsons
tottered from a rear door, staggered weakly into some
dense shrubbery that skirted the far side of the house,
and made his slow way toward the big slope down which
Marion and Martha had gone some hours before.</p>
<p>Retribution had descended swiftly upon Parsons; it
seemed to him he was out of it, crushed and beaten. But
no thread of philosophy weaved its way through the fabric
of the man’s complete misery and humiliation, and no
reflection that he had merely reaped what he had sown
glimmered in his consciousness. He was merely conscious
that he had been beaten and robbed by the man who had
always been his confederate, and as he reeled down the
big slope on his way to the Arrow he whined and moaned
in a toneless voice of vengeance—and more vengeance.</p>
<h2><span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_193'></SPAN>193</span><SPAN name='chXIX' id='chXIX'></SPAN>CHAPTER XIX—THE AMBUSH</h2>
<p>The incident of the fight between Carrington, Danforth,
Judge Littlefield, and Taylor in front of the
courthouse had eloquently revealed a trait of Taylor’s
character which was quite generally known to the people
of Dawes, and which, in a great measure, accounted for
Taylor’s popularity.</p>
<p>Few of Dawes’s citizens had ever seen Taylor angry.
Neil Norton had seen him in a rage once, and the memory
of the man’s face was still vivid. A few of the town’s
citizens had watched him once—when he had thrashed
a gunman who had insulted him—and the story of that
fight still taxed the vocabularies of those who had witnessed
it. One enthusiastic watcher, at the conclusion
of the fight, had picturesquely termed Taylor a “regular
he-wolf in a scrap;” and thus there was written into the
traditions of the town a page of his history which carried
the lesson, repeated by many tongues:</p>
<p>“Don’t rile Taylor!”</p>
<p>Riding into Dawes about two hours after he had heard
from Marion Harlan the story of the attack on her by
Carrington, Taylor’s face was set and grim. His ancient
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_194'></SPAN>194</span>
hatred of Carrington was intensified by another passion
that had burned its way into his heart, filling it with a
primitive lust to destroy—jealousy.</p>
<p>He dismounted in front of the Castle Hotel, and, entering,
he asked the clerk where he could find Carrington.
The clerk could give him no information, and Taylor
went out, the clerk’s puzzled gaze following him.</p>
<p>“Evidently he doesn’t want to congratulate Carrington
about anything,” the clerk confided to a bystander.</p>
<p>Mounting his horse, Taylor rode down the street to the
building which Danforth had selected as a place from
which to administer the government of Dawes. A gilt
sign over the front bore upon it the words:</p>
<div class='center'>
<p>CITY HALL.</p>
</div>
<p>Taylor went inside, and found Danforth seated at a
desk. The latter looked sourly at his visitor until he
caught a glimpse of his eyes, then his face paled, and he
sat silent until Taylor spoke:</p>
<p>“Where’s Carrington?”</p>
<p>“I haven’t seen Carrington this morning,” lied Danforth,
for he <em>had</em> seen Carrington some time before,
riding out of town toward the Huggins house. He suspected
Carrington’s errand was in some way concerned
with the three men who had been sent there. But he
divined from the expression in Taylor’s eyes that trouble
between Taylor and Carrington was imminent, and he
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_195'></SPAN>195</span>
would not set Taylor on the other’s trail without first
warning Carrington.</p>
<p>He met Taylor’s straight, cold look of disbelief with
a vindictive smirk, which grew venomous as Taylor
wheeled and walked out. Taylor had not gone far when
Danforth called a man to his side, whispered rapidly to
him, telling him to hurry. Later the man slipped out of
the rear door of the building, mounted a horse, and rode
hurriedly down the river trail toward the Huggins house.</p>
<p>Taylor rode to the <em>Eagle</em> office, but Norton was not
there, and so, pursuing his quest, Taylor looked into saloons
and stores, and various other places. Men who
knew him noted his taciturnity—for he spoke little except
to greet a friend here and there shortly—and commented
upon his abrupt manner.</p>
<p>“What’s up with Taylor?” asked a man who knew
him. “Looks sort of riled.”</p>
<p>Taylor found Carrington in none of the places in which
he looked. He returned to the <em>Eagle</em> office, and found
Norton there. He greeted Norton with a short:</p>
<p>“Seen Carrington?”</p>
<p>“Why, yes.” Norton peered closely at his friend.
“What in blazes is wrong?” His thoughts went to another
time, when he had seen Taylor as he appeared now,
and he drew a deep breath.</p>
<p>Briefly Taylor told him, and when the tale was ended,
Norton’s eyes were blazing with indignation.
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_196'></SPAN>196</span></p>
<p>“So, that’s the kind of a whelp he is!” he said. “Well,”
he added, “I saw him go out on the river trail a while
ago; it’s likely he’s gone to the Huggins house.”</p>
<p>“His—now,” said Taylor; “that’s what makes it
worse. Well,” he added as he stepped toward the door,
“I’ll be going.”</p>
<p>“Be careful, Squint,” warned Norton, placing a hand
on his friend’s shoulder. “I know you can lick him—and
I hope you give him all that’s coming to him.
But watch him—he’s tricky!” He paused. “If you
need any help—someone to go with you, to keep
an eye——”</p>
<p>“It’s a one-man job,” grinned Taylor mirthlessly.</p>
<p>“You’ll promise you won’t be thinking of that ankle—this
time?” said Norton seriously.</p>
<p>Taylor permitted himself a faint smile. “That’s all
explained now,” he said. “She’s been a lot generous—and
forgiving. No,” he added, “I won’t be thinking of
that ankle—now!”</p>
<p>And then, his lips setting again, he crossed the sidewalk,
mounted Spotted Tail, and rode through town to the
river trail. Watching him, Norton saw him disappear
in some timber that fringed the river.</p>
<hr class='tb' />
<p>Carrington had finished his talk with the three men he
had set to guard the Huggins house. The men were
told to stay until they received orders from Carrington
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_197'></SPAN>197</span>
to leave. And they were to report to him immediately
if anyone came.</p>
<p>Carrington had watched Parsons go down the big
slope; and for a long time after he had finished his talk
with the three men he stood on the front porch of the
house watching the progress made by Parsons through
the basin.</p>
<p>“Following Marion,” Carrington assured himself, with
a crooked smile. “Well, I’ll know where to get both of
them when I want them.”</p>
<p>Carrington felt not the slightest tremor of pity for
Parsons. He laughed deep in his throat with a venomous
joy as he saw Parsons slowly making his way through
the big basin; for he knew Parsons—he knew that the
craven nature of the man would prevent him from attempting
any reprisal of a vigorous character.</p>
<p>Yet the exultation in the big man’s heart was dulled
with a slight regret for his ruthless attack on Marion
Harlan. He should not have been so eager, he told himself;
he should have waited; he should have insinuated
himself into her good graces, and then——</p>
<p>Scowling, he got on his horse and rode up the Dawes
trail, shouting a last word of caution to the three men—one
seated on the front porch, the other two lounging in
the shade of a tree near by.</p>
<p>Half a mile from the house, riding through a timber
grove, he met the man Danforth had sent to him. The
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_198'></SPAN>198</span>
latter gave Carrington the message he carried, which was
merely: “Taylor is looking for you.”</p>
<p>“Coming here?” he asked the man sharply.</p>
<p>“I reckon he will be—if he can’t find you in town,”
said the man. “Danforth said Taylor was a heap fussed
up, an’ killin’ mad!”</p>
<p>A grayish pallor stole over Carrington’s face, and he
drew a quick breath, sending a rapid, dreading glance up
the Dawes trail. Then, coincident with a crafty backward
look—toward the Huggins house—the grayish
pallor receded and a rush of color suffused his face. He
spoke shortly to the man:</p>
<p>“Sneak back—by a roundabout trail. Don’t let Taylor
see you!”</p>
<p>He watched while the man urged his horse deep into
the fringing timber. Carrington could see him for a
time as he rode, and then, when horse and rider had vanished,
Carrington wheeled his horse and sent it clattering
back along the trail to the big house.</p>
<p>Arriving there, he called the three men to him and
talked fast to them. The talk ended, the men ran for
their horses, and a few minutes later they raced up the
river trail toward Dawes, their faces grim, their eyes
alert.</p>
<p>About a mile up the trail, where a wood of spruce and
fir-balsam spread dark shadows over the ground, and an
almost impenetrable growth of brush fringed the narrow,
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_199'></SPAN>199</span>
winding path over which any rider going to the big house
must pass, they separated, two plunging deep into the
brush on one side, and one man secreting himself on
the other side.</p>
<p>They urged their horses far back, where they could not
be seen. And then, concealing themselves behind convenient
bushes, they waited, their eyes trained on the
Dawes trail, their ears attuned to catch the slightest sound
that might come from that direction.</p>
<p>Back at the big house—having arranged the
ambuscade—Carrington drew a deep breath of relief and smiled
evilly. He thought he knew why Taylor was looking for
him. Marion had gone to the Arrow, to tell Taylor what
had happened at the big house, and Taylor, in a jealous
rage, intended to punish him. Well, Taylor could come
now.</p>
<h2><span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_200'></SPAN>200</span><SPAN name='chXX' id='chXX'></SPAN>CHAPTER XX—A FIGHT TO A FINISH</h2>
<p>And Taylor was “coming.” The big black horse he
was riding—which he had named “Spotted Tail”
because of the white blotches that startlingly relieved his
somber sable coat—was never in better condition. He
stepped lightly, running in long, smooth leaps down the
narrow trail, champing at the bit, keen of eye, alert, eager,
snorting his impatience over the tight rein his rider kept
on him.</p>
<p>But Spotted Tail was not more eager than his rider.
Taylor, however, knowing that at any instant he might
run plump into Carrington, returning from the big house,
was forced to restrain his impatience. Therefore, except
on the straight reaches of the trail, he was forced to pull
the black down.</p>
<p>But they were traveling fast when they reached the timber
grove in which Carrington’s men were concealed; and
yet on the damp earth of the trail, where the sunlight
could not penetrate, and where the leaves of past summers
had fallen, to rot and weave a pulpy carpet, the rush
of Spotted Tail’s passing created little sound.</p>
<p>Within a hundred feet of the spot where Carrington’s
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_201'></SPAN>201</span>
men were concealed, Spotted Tail shot his ears forward
stiffly and raised his muzzle inquiringly. Taylor, noting
the action, and suspecting that instinct had warned
Spotted Tail of the approach of another horse, drew the
animal down and rode forward at a walk, for he felt
that it must be Carrington’s horse which was approaching.</p>
<p>Rounding a sharp turn in the trail, Taylor could look
ahead for perhaps a hundred feet. He saw no rider
advancing toward him, and he leaned forward, slapping
the black’s neck in playful reproach.</p>
<p>As he moved he heard the heavy crash of a pistol shot
and felt the bullet sing past his head. Another pistol
barked venomously from some brush on his right, and
still another from his left.</p>
<p>But none of the bullets struck Taylor. For the black
horse, startled by Taylor’s playful movement when all his
senses were strained to detect the location of his kind
on the trail, had made an involuntary forward leap, thus
whisking his rider out of the line of fire. And before
either of the three men could shoot again, Spotted Tail
had flashed down the trail—a streak of somber black
against the green background of the trees.</p>
<p>He fled over the hundred feet of straight trail and
had vanished around a bend before the Carrington men
could move their weapons around impeding branches of
the brush that covered them. There was no stopping
Spotted Tail now, for he was in a frenzy of terror—and
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_202'></SPAN>202</span>
he made a mere rushing black blot as he emerged from
the timber and fled across an open space toward another
wood—the wood that surrounded the big house.</p>
<p>Standing on the front porch of the big house, nervously
smoking a cigar, his face set in sullen lines, his eyes fixed
on the Dawes trail, Carrington heard the shots. He
sighed, grinned maliciously, and relaxed his vigilance.</p>
<p>“He’s settled by now,” he said.</p>
<p>He looked at one of the chairs standing on the porch,
thought of sitting in one of them to await the coming
of the three men, decided he was too impatient to sit,
and began walking back and forth on the porch.</p>
<p>He had thrown a half-smoked cigar away and was
lighting another when he saw a black blot burst from the
edge of a timber-clump beyond an open space. The
match flared and went out as Carrington held it to the end
of the cigar, for there was something strangely familiar
in the shape of the black blot—even with it heading
directly toward him. An instant later, the blot looming
larger in his vision, Carrington dropped cigar and match
and stood staring with wild, fear-haunted eyes at the
rushing black horse.</p>
<p>Carrington stood motionless a little longer—until the
black horse, its rider sitting straight in the saddle, in cowboy
fashion, reached the edge of the wood surrounding
the house. Then Carrington, cursing, his lips in a hideous
pout, drew a pistol from a hip-pocket. And when the
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_203'></SPAN>203</span>
black horse was within fifty feet of him, and still coming
at a speed which there was no gauging, Carrington leveled
the pistol.</p>
<p>Once—twice—three, four, five, six times he pulled
the trigger of the weapon. Carrington saw a grim, mocking
smile on the rider’s face, and knew none of his bullets
had taken effect.</p>
<p>Unarmed now, he was suddenly stricken with a panic
of fear; and while the rider of the black horse was dismounting
at the edge of the porch, Carrington dove for
the front door of the house and vanished inside, slamming
the door behind him, directly in the rider’s face.</p>
<p>When Taylor threw the door open he saw Carrington,
far back in the room, swinging a chair over his head.
At Taylor’s appearance he threw the chair with all the
force his frenzy of fear could put into the effort. Taylor
ducked, and the chair flew past him, sailing uninterruptedly
outside and over the porch railing.</p>
<p>Carrington ran through the big front room, through
the next room—the sitting-room—knocking chairs over
in his flight, throwing a big center table at his silent,
implacable pursuer. He slammed the sitting-room door
and tried to lock it, but he could not turn the key quickly
enough, and Taylor burst the door open, almost plunging
against Carrington as he came through it.</p>
<p>Carrington ran into the dining-room, shoved the dining-room
table in Taylor’s way as Taylor tried to reach
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_204'></SPAN>204</span>
him; but Taylor leaped over the obstruction, and when
Carrington dodged into Marion Harlan’s room, Taylor
was so close that he might have grasped the big man.</p>
<p>Taylor had said no word. The big man saw two guns
swinging at Taylor’s hips, and he wondered vaguely why
the man did not use them. It occurred to Carrington as
he plunged through Marion Harlan’s room into Martha’s,
and from there to the kitchen, and back again to the
dining-room, that Taylor was not going to shoot him, and
his panic partially left him.</p>
<p>And yet there was a gleam in Taylor’s eyes that made
his soul cringe in terror—the cold, bitter fury of a peaceloving
man thoroughly aroused.</p>
<p>Twice, as Taylor pursued Carrington through the sitting-room
again and into another big room that adjoined
it, Carrington’s courage revived long enough to permit
him to consider making a stand against Taylor, but each
time as he stiffened with the determination, the terrible
rage in Taylor’s eyes dissuaded him, and he continued to
evade the clash.</p>
<p>But he knew that the clash must come, and when, in
their rapid, headlong movements, Carrington came close
to the front door and tried to slip out of it, Taylor lunged
against him and struck at him, the fist just grazing Carrington’s
jaw, the big man understood that Taylor was
intent on beating him with his fists.</p>
<p>Had it not been for his previous encounter with Taylor,
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_205'></SPAN>205</span>
Carrington would not have hesitated, for he knew how to
protect himself in a fight; but there was something in
Taylor’s eyes now to add to the memory of that other
fight, and Carrington wanted no more of it.</p>
<p>But at last he was forced to stand. Ducking to evade
the blow aimed at his jaw when he tried to dart out of the
front door, he slipped. Reeling, in an effort to regain his
equilibrium, he plunged into another big room. It was
a room that was little used—an old-fashioned parlor,
kept trim and neat against the coming of visitors, but a
room whose gloominess the occupants of the house usually
avoided.</p>
<p>The shades were down, partly concealing heavy wooden
blinds—which were closed. And the only light in the
room was that which came from a little square window
high up in the side wall.</p>
<p>Before Carrington could regain his balance Taylor had
entered the room. He closed the door behind him, placed
his back against it, locked it, and grinned felinely at the
big man.</p>
<p>“Your men are coming, Carrington,” he said—“hear
them?” In the silence that followed his words both
stood, listening to the beat of hoofs near the house.
“They’ll be trying to get in here in a minute,” went on
Taylor. “But before they get in I’m going to knock your
head off!” And without further warning he was upon
Carrington, striking bitterly.
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_206'></SPAN>206</span></p>
<p>It seemed to Carrington that the man was endowed
with a savage strength entirely out of proportion to his
stature, and that he was able to start terrific, deadening
blows from any angle. For though Carrington was a
strong man and had had some fighting experience, he
could neither evade Taylor’s blows nor stand against
the impact of them.</p>
<p>He went reeling around the room under the impetus
of Taylor’s terrible rushes, struggling to defend himself,
to dodge, to clinch, to evade somehow the fists that were
flying at him from all directions. He could not get an
instant’s respite in which to set himself. Three times in
succession he was knocked down so heavily that the house
shook with the crash of his body striking the floor, and
each time when he got to his feet he tried to fight Taylor
off in an endeavor to set himself for a blow. But he
could not. He was knocked against the walls of the room,
and hammered away from them with stiff, jolty, venomous
blows that jarred him from head to heels. He tried
vainly to cover up—with his arms locked about his head
he crouched and tried to rush Taylor off his feet, knowing
he was stronger than the other, and that his only hope
was in clinching. But Taylor held him off with savage
uppercuts and terrific short-arm swings that smashed
his lips.</p>
<p>He began to mutter in a whining, vicious monotone;
twice he kicked at Taylor, and twice he was knocked down
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_207'></SPAN>207</span>
as a punishment for his foul methods. Finding his methods
ineffectual, and discovering that covering his face
with his arms did not materially lessen the punishment he
was receiving, he began to stand up straight, taking blows
in an effort to land one.</p>
<p>But Taylor eluded him; Carrington’s blows did not
land. Raging and muttering, roaring with impotent passion,
he whipped the air with his arms, almost jerking
them out of their sockets.</p>
<p>Stiff and taut, his muscles accommodating themselves
to every demand he made on them, and in perfect coordination
with his brain—and the purpose of his brain
to inflict upon Carrington the maximum of punishment
for his dastardly attack on Marion Harlan—Taylor
worked fast and furiously. For he heard Carrington’s
three men in the next room; he heard them try the door;
heard them call to Carrington.</p>
<p>And then, convinced that the fight must be ended
quickly, before the men should break down the door and
have him at a disadvantage, Taylor finished it. He
smothered Carrington with a succession of stiff-arm,
straight punches that glazed the other’s eyes and sent him
reeling around the room. And, at last, over in a corner
near the little window, Carrington went down flat on his
back, his eyes closed, his arms flung wide.</p>
<p>Panting from his exertions, Taylor drew his guns and
ran to one of the front windows. They opened upon the
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_208'></SPAN>208</span>
porch, and, peering through the blinds, Taylor saw one
of the men standing at one of the windows, trying to peer
into the room. The other two, Taylor knew, were at
the door—he could hear them talking in the silence that
had followed the final falling of Carrington.</p>
<p>With a gun in each hand, Taylor approached the door.
He was compelled to sheath one of the guns, finding that
it interfered with the turning of the key in the lock; and
he had sheathed it and was slowly turning the key, intending
to throw the door open suddenly and take his chance
with the two men on the other side of it, when he saw
a shadow darken the little window above where Carrington
lay.</p>
<p>He wheeled quickly, saw a man’s face at the window,
caught the glint of a pistol. He snapped a shot at the
man, swinging his gun over his head to keep it from
striking the door as he turned. But at the movement
the man’s pistol roared, glass tinkling on the floor with
the report. The air in the room rocked with the explosion
of Taylor’s pistol, but a heavy blow on Taylor’s left
shoulder, accompanied by a twinge of pain, as though a
white-hot iron had suddenly been plunged through it,
spoiled Taylor’s aim, and his bullet went into the ceiling.
As he staggered back from the door he saw the man’s
face at the window, set in a triumphant grin. Then, as
Taylor flattened against the wall to steady himself for
another shot, the face disappeared.
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_209'></SPAN>209</span></p>
<p>For an instant Taylor rested against the wall, his arms
outstretched along it to keep himself from falling, for the
bullet which had struck him had hurt him badly. The
wound was in the left shoulder, though, and high, and
therefore not dangerous, yet he knew it had robbed his
left arm of most of its strength—there was no feeling
in the fingers that groped along the wall.</p>
<p>He stepped again to the door and softly turned the key
in the lock. He heard no sound in the room beyond the
door, and, thinking that the men, curious over the shooting,
had gone outside, he jerked the door open.</p>
<p>The movement was greeted with deafening report and
a smoke-streak that blinded Taylor momentarily. In just
the instant before the smoke-streak Taylor had caught
a glimpse of a man standing near the center of the room
beyond the door, and though he was rather disconcerted
by the powder-flash and the searing of his left cheek by
a bullet, he let his own gun off twice in as many seconds,
and had the grim satisfaction of seeing the man stagger
and tumble headlong to the floor.</p>
<p>Taylor peered once at the man, to see if he needed further
attention, decided he did not, and ran toward the
front door, which opened upon the porch.</p>
<p>He was just in time to see one of Carrington’s men
sticking his head around a corner of the house. It was
the man who had shot him from the little window. Taylor’s
gun and the man’s roared simultaneously. Taylor
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_210'></SPAN>210</span>
had missed, for the man dodged back, and Taylor staggered,
for the man’s bullet had struck him in the left
thigh. He leaped, though limping, toward the corner,
and when almost there a pistol crashed behind him, the
bullet hitting his left shoulder, near where the other had
gone in, the force of it spinning him clear around, so
that he reeled and brought up against a porch column
where it joined the rail.</p>
<p>Grimly setting himself, grinning bitterly with the realization
that the men had him between them, Taylor stood
momentarily, fighting to overcome the terrible weakness
that had stolen over him. His knees were trembling, the
house, trees, and sky were agitated in sickening convolutions,
and yet when he saw the head of a man appear
from around a corner of the house at his right, he snapped
a shot at it, and instantly as it was withdrawn he staggered
to the corner, lurching heavily as he went, and turning
just as he reached it to reply to a shot sent at him from
the other corner of the house.</p>
<p>A smoke-spurt met him as he reeled around the corner
nearest him, and his knees sagged as he aimed his gun
at a blurring figure in front of him. He saw the man go
down, but his own strength was spent, and he knew the
last bullet had struck him in a vital spot.</p>
<p>Staggering drunkenly, he started for the side of the
house and brought up against it with a crash. Again,
as he had done inside the house, he stretched his arms
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_211'></SPAN>211</span>
out, flattening himself against the wall, but this time the
arms were hanging more limply.</p>
<p>He was seeing things through a crimson haze, and
raising a hand, he wiped his eyes—and could see better,
though there was a queer dimness in his vision and the
world was still traveling in eccentric circles.</p>
<p>He saw a blur in front of him—two men, he thought,
though he knew he had accounted for two of the three
gunmen who had followed him to the house. Then he
heard a laugh—coarse and brutal—in a voice that he
knew—Carrington’s.</p>
<p>With heartbreaking effort he brought up his right hand,
bearing the pistol. He was trying to swing it around
to bring it to bear upon one of the two dancing figures in
front of him, when a crushing blow landed on his head,
and he knew one of the men had struck him with a fist.
He felt his own weapon go off at last—it seemed he had
been an age pressing on the trigger—and he heard a
voice again—Carrington’s—saying: “Damn him; he’s
shot me!” He laughed aloud as a gun roared close to
him; he felt another twinge of pain somewhere around
where the other twinges had come—or on the other
side—he did not know; and he sank slowly, still pressing
the trigger of his pistol, though not knowing whether
or not he was doing any damage. And then the eccentrically
whirling world became a black blur, soundless and
void.</p>
<h2><span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_212'></SPAN>212</span><SPAN name='chXXI' id='chXXI'></SPAN>CHAPTER XXI—A MAN FACES DEATH</h2>
<p>Taylor’s last shot, when he had been automatically
pressing the trigger after Carrington had struck
him viciously with his fist, had brought down the last of
the three men who had ambushed him. And one of his
last bullets had struck Carrington, who had recovered
consciousness and staggered out of the house in time to
see the end of the fight. And the big man, in a black,
malignant fury of hatred, was staggering toward Taylor,
lifting a foot to kick him, when from the direction of the
clearing in front of the house came a voice, hoarse and
vibrant with a cold, deadly rage:</p>
<p>“One kick an’ I blow the top of your head off!”
Carrington stopped short and wheeled, to face Ben
Mullarky.</p>
<p>The Irishman’s eyes were blazing with wrath, and as
he came forward, peering at the figures lying on the
ground near the house, Carrington retreated, holding up
his hands.</p>
<p>“Three of ye pilin’ on one, eh?” said Mullarky as he
looked down at Taylor, huddled against the side of
the house. “An’ ye got him, too, didn’t ye? I’ve a
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_213'></SPAN>213</span>
domn big notion to blow the top of your head off,
anny way. Ye slope, ye big limb of the divvle, or I’ll
do it!”</p>
<p>Mullarky watched while Carrington mounted his horse
and rode up the river trail toward Dawes, and the instant
Carrington was out of sight, Mullarky was down on his
knees beside Taylor, taking a lightning inventory of his
wounds.</p>
<p>“Four of them, looks like!” he muttered thickly, his
voice shaking with pity for the slack, limp, smoke-blackened
figure that lay silent, the trace of a smile on its face.
“An’ two of them through the shoulder!” He paused,
awed. “Lord, what a shindy!”</p>
<p>Then, swiftly gulping down his sympathy and his rage,
Mullarky ran to his horse, which he had left at the edge of
the wood when he had heard the shooting. He led the
animal back to where Taylor lay, tenderly lifted Taylor
in his arms, walked to the horse, and after much labor
got Taylor up in front of him on the horse, Taylor’s
weight resting on his legs, the man’s head and shoulders
resting against him, to ease the jars of the journey.</p>
<p>Then he started, traveling as swiftly as possible down
the big slope toward his own house, not so very far away.</p>
<p>Spotted Tail, jealously watching his master, saw him
lifted to the back of the other horse. Shrewdly suspecting
that all was not going well, and that his master would need
him presently, Spotted Tail trotted after Mullarky.
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_214'></SPAN>214</span></p>
<p>In this manner, with Spotted Tail a few paces in his
rear, Mullarky, still tenderly carrying his burden, reached
his cabin.</p>
<p>He stilled Mrs. Mullarky’s hysterical questions with a
short command:</p>
<p>“Hitch up the buckboard while I’m gettin’ him in
shape!”</p>
<p>And then, while Mrs. Mullarky did as she was bidden,
Mullarky carried Taylor inside the cabin, bathed his
wounds, stanching the flow of blood as best he could—and
came out again, carrying Taylor, and placed him in
the bed of the light spring-wagon, upon some quilts—and
upon a pillow that Mrs. Mullarky ran into the house
to get, emerging with the reproach:</p>
<p>“You’d be lettin’ him ride on them hard boards!”</p>
<p>Following Mullarky’s instructions, Mrs. Mullarky
climbed to the driver’s seat and sent the buckboard toward
the Arrow, driving as fast as she thought she dared.
And Ben Mullarky, on Spotted Tail, turned his face
toward Dawes, riding as he had never ridden before.</p>
<hr class='tb' />
<p>Parsons had reached the Arrow shortly after Taylor
had departed for Dawes. The man had stopped at the
Mullarky cabin to inquire the way from the lady, and
she had frankly commented upon Parsons’ battered
appearance.</p>
<p>“So it was Carrington that mauled you, eh?” she said.
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_215'></SPAN>215</span>
“Well, he’s a mighty evil man—the divvle take his
sowl!”</p>
<p>Parsons concurred in this view of Carrington, though
he did not tell Mrs. Mullarky so. He went on his way,
refusing the good woman’s proffer of a horse, for he
wanted to go afoot to the Arrow. He felt sure of Marion’s
sympathy, but he wanted to make himself as pitiable
an object as possible. And as he walked toward the
Arrow he mentally dramatized the moment of his appearance
at the ranchhouse—a bruised and battered figure
dragging itself wearily forward, dusty, thirst-tortured,
and despairing. He knew that spectacle would win the
girl’s swift sympathy. The fact that the girl herself had
been through almost the same experience did not affect
him at all—he did not even think of it.</p>
<p>And when Parsons reached the Arrow the scene was
even as he had dreamed it—Marion Harlan had seen
him from afar, and came running to him, placing an arm
about him, helping him forward, whispering words of
sympathy in his ears, so that Parsons really began to look
upon himself as a badly abused martyr.</p>
<p>Marion cared for him tenderly, once she got him into
the ranchhouse. She bathed his bruised face, prepared
breakfast for him, and later, learning from him that he
had not slept during the night, she sent him off to bed,
asking him as he went into the room if he had seen Ben
Mullarky.
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_216'></SPAN>216</span></p>
<p>“For,” she added, “he came here early this morning,
after Mr. Taylor left, and I sent him to the big house to
get some things for me.”</p>
<p>But Parsons had not seen Mullarky.</p>
<p>And at last, when the morning was nearly gone, and
Marion saw a horse-drawn vehicle approaching the Arrow
from the direction of Dawes, she ran out, thinking Ben
Mullarky had brought her “things” in his buckboard.
But it was not Ben who was coming, but Mrs. Mullarky.
The lady’s face was very white and serious, and when
the girl came close and she saw the look on the good
woman’s face, she halted in her tracks and stood rigid,
her own face paling.</p>
<p>“Why, Mrs. Mullarky, what has happened?”</p>
<p>“Enough, deary.” Mrs. Mullarky waved an eloquent
hand toward the rear of the buckboard, and slowly approaching,
the girl saw the huddled figure lying there,
swathed in quilts.</p>
<p>She drew her breath sharply, and with pallid face,
swaying a little, she walked to the rear of the buckboard
and stood, holding hard to the rim of a wheel, looking
down at Taylor’s face with its closed eyes and its ghastly
color.</p>
<p>She must have screamed, then, for she felt Mrs. Mullarky’s
arms around her, and she heard the lady’s voice,
saying: “Don’t, deary; he ain’t dead, yet—an’ he won’t
die—we won’t let him die.”
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_217'></SPAN>217</span></p>
<p>She stood there by the buckboard for a time—until
Mrs. Mullarky, running to one of the outbuildings, returned
with Bud Hemmingway. Then, nerved to the
ordeal by Bud’s businesslike methods, and the awful profanity
that gushed from his clenched teeth, she helped
them carry Taylor into the house.</p>
<p>They took Taylor into his own room and laid him on
the bed; a long, limp figure, pitifully shattered, lying
very white and still.</p>
<p>The girl stayed in the room while Mrs. Mullarky and
Bud ran hither and thither getting water, cloths, stimulants,
and other indispensable articles. And during one
of their absences the girl knelt beside the bed, and resting
her head close to Taylor’s—with her hands stroking his
blackened face—she whispered:</p>
<p>“O Lord, save him—save him for—for me!”</p>
<h2><span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_218'></SPAN>218</span><SPAN name='chXXII' id='chXXII'></SPAN>CHAPTER XXII—LOOKING FOR TROUBLE</h2>
<p>Before night the Arrow outfit, led by Bothwell,
the range boss, came into the ranchhouse. For the
news had reached them—after the manner in which all
news travels in the cow-country—by word of mouth—and
they had come in—all those who could be spared—to
determine the truth of the rumor.</p>
<p>There were fifteen of them, rugged, capable-looking
fellows; and despite the doctor’s objections, they filed
singly, though noiselessly, into Taylor’s room and silently
looked down upon their “boss.” Marion, watching them
from a corner of the room, noted their quick gulps of
pity, their grim faces, the savage gleams that came into
their eyes, and she knew they were thinking of vengeance
upon the men who had wrought the injury to their
employer.</p>
<p>Bothwell—big, grim, and deliberate of manner—said
nothing as he looked down into his chief’s face. But
later, outside the house, listening to Bud Hemmingway’s
recital of how Taylor had been brought to the ranchhouse,
Bothwell said shortly:</p>
<p>“I’m takin’ a look!”
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_219'></SPAN>219</span></p>
<p>Shortly afterward, followed by every man of the outfit
who had ridden in with him, Bothwell crossed the big
basin and sent his horse up the long slope to the big house.</p>
<p>Outside they came upon the bodies of the two men
with whom Taylor had fought. And inside the house
they saw the other huddled on the floor near a door in the
big front room. Silently the men filed through the house,
looking into all the rooms, and noting the wreck and ruin
that had been wrought. They saw the broken glass of
the little window through which one of Carrington’s men
had fired the first shot; they noted the hole in the ceiling—caused
by a bullet from Taylor’s pistol; and they saw
another hole in the wall near the door beside which Taylor
had been standing just before he had swung the door open.</p>
<p>“Three of them—an’ Carrington—accordin’ to what
Bud says,” said Bothwell. “That’s four.” He smiled
bitterly. “They got him all right—almost, I reckon.
But from the looks of things they must have had a roarin’
picnic doin’ it!”</p>
<p>Not disturbing anything, the entire outfit mounted and
rode swiftly down the Dawes trail, their hearts swelling
with sympathy for Taylor and passionate hatred for Carrington,
“itching for a clean-up,” as one sullen-looking
member of the outfit described his feelings.</p>
<p>But there was no “clean-up.” When they reached
Dawes they found the town quiet—and men who saw
them gave them plenty of room and forebore to argue with
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_220'></SPAN>220</span>
them. For it was known that they were reckless, hardy
spirits when the mood came upon them, and that they
worshiped Taylor.</p>
<p>And so they entered Dawes, and Dawes treated them
with respect. Passing the city hall, they noticed some
men grouped in front of the building, and they halted,
Bothwell dismounting and entering.</p>
<p>“What’s the gang collectin’ for?” he asked a man—whom
he knew for Danforth. There was a belligerent
thrust to Bothwell’s chin, and a glare in his eyes that,
Danforth felt, must be met with diplomacy.</p>
<p>“There’s been trouble at the Huggins house, and I’m
sending these men to investigate.”</p>
<p>“Give them diggin’ tools,” said Bothwell grimly. “An’
remember this—if there’s any more herd-ridin’ of our
boss the Arrow outfit is startin’ a private graveyard!”
He pinned the mayor with a cold glare: “Where’s
Carrington?”</p>
<p>“In his rooms—under a doctor’s care. He’s hit—bad.
A bullet in his side.”</p>
<p>“Ought to be in his gizzard!” growled Bothwell. He
went out, mounted, and led his men away. They were
reluctant to leave town, but Bothwell was insistent.
“They ain’t no fight in that bunch of plug-uglies!” he
scoffed. “We’ll go back an’ ’tend to business, an’ pull
for the boss to get well!”</p>
<p>And so they returned to the Arrow, to find that the
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_221'></SPAN>221</span>
Dawes doctor was still with Taylor. The doctor sent out
word to them that there was a slight chance for his patient,
and satisfied that they had done all they could, they
rode away, to attend to “business.”</p>
<p>For the first time in her life Marion Harlan was witnessing
the fight of a strong man to live despite grievous
wounds that, she was certain, would have instantly killed
most men. But Taylor fought his fight unconsciously,
for he was still in that deep coma that had descended
upon him when he had gently slipped to the ground beside
the house, still fighting, still scorning the efforts of his
enemies to finish him.</p>
<p>And during the first night’s fever he still fought; the
powerful sedatives administered by the doctor had little
effect. In his delirium he muttered such terms and
phrases as these: “Run, damn you—run! I ain’t in
any hurry, and I’ll get you!” And—“I’ll certainly
smash you some!” And—“A ‘thing,’ eh—I’ll show
you! She’s mine, you miserable whelp!”</p>
<p>Whether these were thoughts, or whether they were
memories of past utterances, made vivid and brought into
the present by the fever, the girl did not know. She sat
beside his bed all night, with the doctor near her, waiting
and watching and listening.</p>
<p>And she heard more: “That’s Larry’s girl, and it’s
up to me to protect her.” And—“I knew she’d look like
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_222'></SPAN>222</span>
that.” Also—“They’re both tryin’ to send her to hell!
But I’ll fool them!” At these times there was ineffable
tenderness in his voice. But at times he broke out in
terrible wrath. “Ambush me, eh? Ha, ha! That was
right clever of you, Spotted Tail—we didn’t make a
good target, did we? Only for your sense we’d
have—” He ceased, to begin anew: “I’ve got <em>you</em>—damn
you!” And then he would try to sit erect, swinging
his arms as though he were trying to hit someone.</p>
<p>But toward morning he fell into a fitful sleep—the
sleep of exhaustion; and when the dawn came, Mrs. Mullarky
ordered the girl, pale and wan from her night’s
vigilance and service, to “go to bed.”</p>
<p>For three days it was the same. And for three days
the doctor stayed at the side of the patient, only sleeping
when Miss Harlan watched over Taylor.</p>
<p>And during the three days’ vigil, Taylor’s delirium
lasted. The girl learned more of his character during
those three days of constant watchfulness than she would
have learned in as many years otherwise. That he was
honorable and courageous, she knew; but that he was so
sincerely apprehensive over her welfare she had never
suspected. For she learned through his ravings that he
had fought Carrington and the three men for her; that
he had deliberately sought Carrington to punish him for
the attack on her, and that he had not considered his own
danger at all.
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_223'></SPAN>223</span></p>
<p>And at the beginning of the fourth day, when he opened
his eyes and stared wonderingly about the room, his gaze
at first resting upon the doctor, and then traveling to the
girl’s face, and remaining there for a long time, while a
faint smile wreathed his lips, the girl’s heart beat high
with delight.</p>
<p>“Well, I’m still a going it,” he said weakly.</p>
<p>“I remember,” he went on, musingly. “When they
was handing it to me, I was thinking that I was in pretty
bad shape. And then they must have handed it to me
some more, for I quit thinking at all. I’m going to pull
through—ain’t I?”</p>
<p>“You are!” declared the doctor. “That is,” he
amended, “if you keep your trap shut and do a lot of
sleeping.”</p>
<p>“For which I’m going to have a lot of time,” smiled
Taylor. “I’m going to sleep, for I feel mighty like sleeping.
But before I do any sleeping, there’s a thing I want
to know. Did Carrington’s men—the last two—get
away, or did I——”</p>
<p>“You did,” grinned the doctor. “Bothwell rode over
there to find out—and Mullarky saw them. Mullarky
brought you back—and got me.”</p>
<p>“Carrington?” inquired the patient.</p>
<p>“Mullarky saw him. He says he never saw a man so
beat up in his life. Besides, you shot him, too—in the
side. Not dangerous, but a heap painful.”
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_224'></SPAN>224</span></p>
<p>Taylor smiled and looked at Miss Harlan. “I knew
you were here,” he said; “I’ve felt you near me. It was
mighty comforting, and I want to thank you for it. There
were times when I must have shot off my mouth a heap.
If I said anything I shouldn’t have said, I’m a whole lot
sorry. And I’m asking your pardon.”</p>
<p>“You didn’t,” she said, her eyes eloquent with joy
over the improvement in him.</p>
<p>“Well, then, I’m going to sleep.” He raised his right
hand—his good one—and waved it gayly at them—and
closed his eyes.</p>
<h2><span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_225'></SPAN>225</span><SPAN name='chXXIII' id='chXXIII'></SPAN>CHAPTER XXIII—A WORLD-OLD LONGING</h2>
<p>Looking back upon the long period of Taylor’s
convalescence, Marion Harlan could easily understand
why she had surrendered to the patient.</p>
<p>In the first place, she had liked Taylor from the very
beginning—even when she had affected to ridicule him
on the train coming toward Dawes. She had known all
along that she had liked him, and on that morning when
she had visited the Arrow to ask about her father Taylor
had woven a magnetic spell about her.</p>
<p>That meeting and the succeeding ones had merely
strengthened her liking for him. But the inevitable intimacy
between nurse and patient during several long weeks
of convalescence had wrought havoc with her heart.</p>
<p>Taylor’s unfailing patience and good humor had been
another factor in bringing about her surrender. It was
hard for her to believe that he had fought a desperate
battle which had resulted in the death of three men and
the wounding of Carrington and himself; for there were
no savage impulses or passions gleaming in the eyes that
followed her every movement while she had been busy
in the sickroom for some weeks. Nor could she see any
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_226'></SPAN>226</span>
lingering threat in them, promising more violence upon
his recovery. He seemed to have forgotten that there
had been a fight, and during the weeks that she had been
close to him he had not even mentioned it. He had been
content, it seemed, to lounge in a chair and listen to her
while she read, to watch her; and there had been times
when she had seen a glow in his eyes that told her things
that she longed to hear him say.</p>
<p>The girl’s surrender had not been conveyed to Taylor
in words, though she was certain he knew of it; for the
signs of it must have been visible, since she could feel
the blushes in her cheeks at times when a word or a look
passing between them was eloquent with the proof of her
aroused emotions.</p>
<p>It was on a morning about six weeks following the
incident of the shooting that she and Taylor had walked
to the river. Upon a huge flat rock near the edge of a
slight promontory they seated themselves, Taylor turned
slightly, so that she had only a profile view of him.</p>
<p>Taylor’s thoughts were grave. For from where he and
the girl sat—far beyond the vast expanse of green-brown
grass that carpeted the big level—he could see a huge
cleft in some mountains. And the sight of that cleft sent
Taylor’s thoughts leaping back to the days he and Larry
Harlan had spent in these mountains, searching for—and
finding—that gold for which they had come. And inevitably
as the contemplation of the mountains brought
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_227'></SPAN>227</span>
him recollections of Larry Harlan he was reminded of his
obligation to his old-time partner. And the difficulties of
discharging that obligation were increasing, it seemed.</p>
<p>At least, Taylor’s duty was not quite clear to him.
For while Parsons still retained a place in the girl’s affections
he could not turn over to her Larry’s share of the
money he had received from the sale of the mine.</p>
<p>And Parsons did retain the girl’s affections—likewise
her confidence and trust. A man must be blind who could
not see that. For the girl looked after him as any dutiful
girl might care for a father she loved. Her attitude
toward the man puzzled Taylor, for, he assured himself,
if she would but merely study the man’s face perfunctorily
she could not have failed to see the signs of deceit
and hypocrisy in it. All of which convinced Taylor of
the truth of the old adage: “Love is blind.”</p>
<p>One other influence which dissuaded Taylor from an
impulse to turn over Larry’s money to the girl was his
determination to win her on his own merits. That might
have seemed selfishness on his part, but now that the girl
was at the Arrow he could see that she was well supplied
with everything she needed. Her legacy would not buy
her more than he would give her gratuitously. And he
did not want her to think for a single moment he was
trying to buy her love. That, to his mind was gross
commercialism.</p>
<p>Marion was not looking at the mountains; she was
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_228'></SPAN>228</span>
watching Taylor’s profile—and blushing over thoughts
that came to her.</p>
<p>For she wished that she might have met him under
different conditions—upon a basis of equality. And
that was not the basis upon which they stood now. She
had come to the Arrow because she had no other place to
go, vindicating her action upon Taylor’s declaration that
he had been her father’s friend.</p>
<p>That had been a tangible premise, and was sufficient to
satisfy, or to dull, any surface scruples he might have
had regarding the propriety of the action. But her own
moral sense struck deeper than that. She felt she had
no right to be here; that Taylor had made the offer of a
partnership out of charity. And so long as she stayed
here, dependent upon him for food and shelter, she could
not permit him to speak a word of love to her—much
as she wanted him to speak it. Such was the puritanical
principle driven deep into the moral fabric of her character
by a mother who had set her a bad example.</p>
<p>This man had fought for her; he had risked his life
to punish a man who had wronged her in thought, only;
and she knew he loved her. And yet, seated so near him,
she could not put out the hand that longed to touch
him.</p>
<p>However, her thoughts were not tragic—far from it!
Youth is hopeful because it has so long to wait. And
there was in her heart at this moment a presentiment that
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_229'></SPAN>229</span>
time would sever the bonds of propriety that held her.
And the instincts of her sex—though never having been
tested in the arts of coquetry—told her how to keep his
heart warm toward her until that day, having achieved
her independence, she could meet him on a basis of
equality.</p>
<p>“Mr. Squint,” she suddenly demanded; “what are you
thinking about?”</p>
<p>He turned and looked full at her, his eyes glowing
with a grave humor.</p>
<p>“I’d tell you if I thought you’d listen to me,” he
returned, significantly. “But it seems that every time I
get on that subject you poke fun at me. Is there <em>anything</em>
I can do to show you that I love you—that I want you
more than any man ever wanted a woman?”</p>
<p>“Yes—there is.” Her smile was tantalizing.</p>
<p>“Name it!” he demanded, eagerly.</p>
<p>“Stop being tragic. I don’t like you when you are
tragic—or when you are talking nonsense about love.
I have heard so much of it!”</p>
<p>“From me, I suppose?” he said, gloomily.</p>
<p>He had turned his head and she shot a quick, eloquent
glance at him. “From you—and several others,” she
said, deliberately.</p>
<p>There was a resentful, hurt look in his eyes when he
turned and looked at her. “Just how many?” he demanded,
somewhat gruffly.
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_230'></SPAN>230</span></p>
<p>“Jealous!” she said, shaking her finger at him. “Do
you want a bill of particulars? Because if you do,” she
added, looking demurely downward, “I should have to
take several days to think it over. You see, a woman
can’t catalogue everything men say to her—for they say
so many silly things!”</p>
<p>“Love isn’t silly,” he declared. He looked rather
fiercely at her. “What kind of a man do you like best?”
he demanded.</p>
<p>She blushed. “I like a big man—about as big as
you,” she said. “A man with fierce eyes that glower at
a woman when she talks to him of love—she insisting
that she hasn’t quite fallen in love—with <em>him</em>. I like a
man who is jealous of the reputation of the woman he
<em>professes</em> to love; a man who is jealous of other men; a
man who isn’t so very good-looking, but who is a handsome
man for all that—because he is so very manly; a
man who will fight and risk his life for me.”</p>
<p>“Could you name such a man?” he said. There was a
scornful gleam in his eyes.</p>
<p>“I am looking at him this minute!” she said.</p>
<p>Grinning, for he knew all along that she had been talking
of him, he wheeled quickly and tried to catch her in
his arms. But she slipped off the rock and was around
on the other side of it, keeping it between them while he
tried to catch her. Instinctively he realized that the
chase was hopeless, but he persisted.
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_231'></SPAN>231</span></p>
<p>“I’ll never speak to you again if you catch me!” she
warned, her eyes flashing.</p>
<p>“But you told me——”</p>
<p>“That I liked you,” she interrupted. “And liking a
man isn’t——”</p>
<p>And then she paused and looked down, blushing, while
Taylor, in the act of vaulting over the rock, collapsed and
sat on it instead, red of face and embarrassed.</p>
<p>For within a dozen paces of them, and looking rather
embarrassed and self-conscious, himself, though with a
twinkle in his eyes that made Taylor’s cheeks turn redder—was
Bud Hemmingway.</p>
<p>“I’m beggin’ your pardon,” said the puncher; “but
I’ve come to tell you that Neil Norton is here—again.
He’s been settin’ on the porch for an hour or two—he
says. But I think he’s stretching it. Anyway, he’s tired
of waitin’ for you—he says—an’ he’s been wonderin’
if you was goin’ to set on that boulder all day!”</p>
<p>Taylor slipped off the rock and started toward Bud,
feigning resentment.</p>
<p>Bud, his face agitated by a broad grin, deliberately
winked at Miss Harlan—though he spoke to Taylor.</p>
<p>“I’d be a little careful about how I went to jumpin’
off boulders—you might bust your ankle again!”</p>
<p>And then Taylor grinned at Miss Harlan—who pretended
a severity she did not feel; while Bud, cackling
mirthfully, went toward the ranchhouse.</p>
<h2><span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_232'></SPAN>232</span><SPAN name='chXXIV' id='chXXIV'></SPAN>CHAPTER XXIV—A DEATH WARRANT</h2>
<p>Carrington was not a coward; he was not even
a cautious man. And the bitter malice that filled
his heart, together with riotous impulses that seethed in
his brain prompted him to go straight to the Arrow,
wreak vengeance upon Taylor and drag Marion Harlan
back to the big house he had bought for her.</p>
<p>But a certain memory of Taylor’s face when the latter
had been pursuing him through the big house; a knowledge
of Taylor’s ability to inflict punishment, together
with a divination that Taylor would not hesitate to kill
him should there arise the slightest opportunity—all
these considerations served to deter Carrington from
undertaking any rash action.</p>
<p>Taylor’s opposition to his desires enraged Carrington.
He had met and conquered many men—and he had coolly
and deliberately robbed many others, himself standing
secure and immune behind legal barriers. And he had
seen his victims writhe and squirm and struggle in the
meshes he had prepared for them. He had heard them
rave and wail and threaten; but not one of them had
attempted to inflict physical punishment upon him.
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_233'></SPAN>233</span></p>
<p>Taylor, however, was of the fighting type. On two
occasions, now, Carrington had been given convincing
proof of the man’s ability. And he had seen in Taylor’s
eyes on the latest occasion the implacable gleam of iron
resolution and—when Taylor had gone down, fighting
to the last, in the sanguinary battle at the big house, he
had not failed to note the indomitability of the man—the
tenacious and dogged spirit that knows no defeat—a
spirit that would not be denied.</p>
<p>And so, though Carrington’s desires would have led
him to recklessly carry the fight to the Arrow, certain
dragging qualms of reluctance dissuaded him from another
meeting with Taylor on equal terms.</p>
<p>And yet the malevolent passions that gripped the big
man would not tolerate the thought of opposition. Taylor
was the only man who stood between him and his desires,
and Taylor must be removed.</p>
<p>During the days of Carrington’s confinement to his
rooms above the Castle—awaiting the slow healing of
the wound Taylor had inflicted upon him, and the many
bruises that marred his face—mementoes of the terrible
punishment Taylor had inflicted upon him—the big man
nursed his venomous thoughts and laid plans for revenge
upon his enemy.</p>
<p>As soon as he was able to appear in Dawes—to undergo
without humiliation the inspection of his face by
the citizens of the town—for news of his punishment
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_234'></SPAN>234</span>
had been whispered broadcast—he boarded a westbound
train.</p>
<p>He got off at Nogel, a little mining town sitting at the
base of some foothills in the Sangre de Christo Range,
some miles from Dawes.</p>
<p>He spent three days in Nogel, interrogating the resident
manager of the “Larry’s Luck” mine, talking with
miners and storekeepers and quizzing men in saloons—and
at the beginning of the fourth day he returned to
Dawes.</p>
<p>At about the time Miss Harlan and Taylor were sitting
on the rock on the bank of the river near the Arrow,
Carrington was in the courthouse at Dawes, leaning over
Judge Littlefield’s desk. A tall, sleek-looking man of
middle age, with a cold, steady eye and a smooth smile,
stood near Carrington. The man was neatly attired, and
looked like a prosperous mine-owner or operator.</p>
<p>But had the judge looked sharply at his hands when he
gripped the one that was held out to him when Carrington
introduced the man; or had he been a physiognomist of
average ability, he could not have failed to note the
smooth softness of the man’s hands and the gleam of guile
and cunning swimming deep in his eyes.</p>
<p>But the judge noted none of those things. He had
caught the man’s name—Mint Morton—and instantly
afterward all his senses became centered upon what the
man was saying.
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_235'></SPAN>235</span></p>
<p>For the man spoke of conscience—and the judge had
one of his own—a guilty one. So he listened attentively
while the man talked.</p>
<p>The thing had been bothering the man for some months—or
from the time it happened, he said. And he had
come to make a confession.</p>
<p>He was a miner, having a claim near Nogel. He knew
Quinton Taylor, and he had known Larry Harlan. One
morning after leaving his mine on a trip to Nogel for
supplies, he had passed close to the “Larry’s Luck”
mine. Being on good terms with the partners, he had
thought of visiting them. Approaching the mine on foot—having
left his horse at a little distance—he heard
Taylor and Harlan quarreling. He had no opportunity
to interfere, for just as he came upon the men he saw
Taylor knock Harlan down with a blow of his fist. And
while Harlan lay unconscious on the ground Taylor had
struck him on the head with a rock.</p>
<p>Morton had not revealed himself, then, fearing Taylor
would attack him. He had concealed himself, and had
seen Taylor, apparently remorseful, trying to revive
Harlan. These efforts proving futile, Taylor had rigged
up a drag, placed Harlan on it, and had taken him to
Nogel. But Harlan died on the way.</p>
<p>To Littlefield’s inquiry as to why Morton had not reported
the murder instantly, the man replied that, being
a friend to Taylor, he had been reluctant to expose him.
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_236'></SPAN>236</span></p>
<p>After the man concluded his story the judge and Carrington
exchanged glances. There was a vindictively
triumphant gleam in Littlefield’s eyes, for he still remembered
the humiliation he had endured at Taylor’s hands.</p>
<p>He took Morton’s deposition, told him he would send
for him, later; and dismissed him. Carrington, appearing
to be much astonished over the man’s confession,
accompanied him to the station, where he watched him
board the train that would take him back to Nogel.</p>
<p>And on the platform of one of the coaches, Carrington,
grinning wickedly, gave the man a number of yellow-backed
treasury notes.</p>
<p>“You think I won’t have to come back—to testify
against him?” asked the man, smiling coldly.</p>
<p>“Certainly not!” declared Carrington. “You’ve
signed his death warrant this time!”</p>
<p>Carrington watched the train glide westward, and then
returned to the courthouse. He found the judge sitting
at his desk, gazing meditatively at the floor. For there
had been something insincere in Morton’s manner—his
story of the murder had not been quite convincing—and
in spite of his resentment against Taylor the judge did
not desire to add anything to the burden already carried
by his conscience.</p>
<p>Carrington grinned maliciously as he halted at Littlefield’s
side and laid a hand on the other’s arm.</p>
<p>“We’ve got him, Littlefield!” he said. “Get busy.
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_237'></SPAN>237</span>
Issue a warrant for his arrest. I’ll have Danforth send
you some men to serve as deputies—twenty of them, if
you think it necessary!”</p>
<p>The judge cleared his throat and looked with shifting
eyes at the other.</p>
<p>“Look here, Carrington,” he said, “I—I have some
doubts about the sincerity of that man Morton. I’d like
to postpone action in this case until I can make an investigation.
It seems to me that—that Taylor, for all his—er—seeming
viciousness, is not the kind of man to kill
his partner. I’d like to delay just a little, to——”</p>
<p>“And let Taylor get wind of the thing—and escape.
Not by a damned sight! One man’s word is as good as
another’s in this country; and it’s your duty as a judge
of the court, here, to act upon any complaint. You issue
the warrant. I’ll get Keats to serve it. He’ll bring Taylor
here, and you can legally examine him. That’s merely
justice!”</p>
<p>Half an hour later, Carrington was handing the warrant
to a big, rough-looking man with an habitual and
cruel droop to the corners of his mouth.</p>
<p>“You’d better take some men with you, Keats,” suggested
Carrington. “He’ll fight, most likely,” he grinned,
evilly. “Understand,” he added; “if you should have to
kill Taylor bringing him in, there would be no inquiry
made. And—” he looked at Keats and grinned, slowly
and deliberately closing an eye.</p>
<h2><span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_238'></SPAN>238</span><SPAN name='chXXV' id='chXXV'></SPAN>CHAPTER XXV—KEATS LOOKS FOR “SQUINT”</h2>
<p>Neil Norton had been attending to Taylor’s
affairs in Dawes during the latter’s illness, and
he had ridden to the Arrow this morning to discuss with
Taylor a letter he had received—for Taylor—from a
Denver cattle buyer. The inquiry was for Herefords of
certain markings and quality, and Norton could give the
buyer no information. So Norton had come to Taylor
for the information.</p>
<p>“The herd is grazing in the Kelso Basin,” Taylor told
Norton. Norton knew the Kelso Basin was at least
fifteen miles distant from the Arrow ranchhouse—a deep,
wide valley directly west, watered by the same river that
flowed near the Arrow ranchhouse.</p>
<p>“I can’t say, offhand, whether we’ve got what your
Denver man wants.” He grinned at Norton, adding:
“But it’s a fine morning for a ride, and I haven’t done
much riding lately. I’ll go and take a look.”</p>
<p>“I’ll be looking, too,” declared Norton. “The <em>Eagle</em>
forms are ready for the press, and there isn’t much to do.”</p>
<p>Later, Taylor, mounted on Spotted Tail, and Norton
on a big, rangy sorrel, the two men rode away. Taylor
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_239'></SPAN>239</span>
stopped at the horse corral gate long enough to tell Bud
Hemmingway, who was replacing a bar, that he and
Norton were riding to the Kelso Basin.</p>
<p>And there was one other to whom he had spoken—when
he had gone into the house to buckle on his cartridge-belt
and pistols, just before he went out to saddle
Spotted Tail. It was the girl who had tantalized him
while they had been sitting on the rock. She had not
spoken frivolously to him inside the house; instead, she
had gravely warned him to be “careful;” that his wounds
might bother him on a long ride—and that she didn’t
want him to suffer a relapse. And she watched him as he
and Norton rode away, following the dust-cloud that
enveloped them until it vanished into the mists of distance.
Then she turned from the door with a sigh, thinking
of the fate that had made her dependent upon the
charity of the man she loved.</p>
<p>To Bud Hemmingway, working at the corral gate about
an hour following the departure of Taylor and Norton,
there came an insistent demand to look toward Dawes.
It was merely one of those absurd impulses founded
upon a whim provoked by self-manufactured presentiment—but
Bud looked. What he saw caused him to
stand erect and stare hard at the trail between Mullarky’s
cabin and the Arrow—for about two miles out came a
dozen or more riders, their horses traveling fast.</p>
<p>For several seconds Bud watched intently, straining his
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_240'></SPAN>240</span>
eyes in an effort to distinguish something about the men
that would make their identity clear. And then he
dropped the hammer he had been working with and ran
to the bunkhouse, where he put on his cartridge-belt and
pistol.</p>
<p>Returning to the bunkhouse door, he stood in it for a
time, watching the approaching men. Then he scowled,
muttering:</p>
<p>“It’s that damned Keats an’ some of his bunch! What
in hell are they wantin’ at the Arrow?”</p>
<p>Bud was standing near the edge of the front gallery
when Keats and his men rode up. There were fourteen
of the men, and, like their leader, they were ill-visaged,
bepistoled.</p>
<p>Marion Harlan had heard the noise of their approach,
and she had come to the front door. She stood in the
opening, her gaze fixed inquiringly upon the riders, though
chiefly upon Keats, whose manner proclaimed him the
leader. He looked at Bud.</p>
<p>“Hello, Hemmingway!” he greeted, gruffly. “I take
it the outfit ain’t in?”</p>
<p>“Workin’, Kelso,” returned Bud. Bud’s gaze at Keats
was belligerent; he resented the presence of Keats and
the men at the Arrow, for he had never liked Keats, and
he knew the relations between the visitor and Taylor
were strained almost to the point of open antagonism.</p>
<p>“What’s eatin’ you guys?” demanded Bud.
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_241'></SPAN>241</span></p>
<p>“Plenty!” stated Keats importantly. He turned to
the men.</p>
<p>“Scatter!” he commanded; “an’ rustle him up, if he’s
anywhere around! Hey!” he shouted at a slender, rat-faced
individual. “You an’ Darbey search the house!
Two more of you take a look at the bunkhouse—and the
rest of you nose around the other buildin’s. Keep your
eyes peeled, an’ if he goes to gettin’ fresh, plug him
plenty!”</p>
<p>“Why, what is wrong?” demanded Marion. Her
face was pale with indignation, for she resented the
authoritative tone used by Keats as much as she resented
the thought of the two men entering the house unbidden.</p>
<p>Keats’s face flamed with sudden passion. With a snap
of his wrist he drew his gun and trained its muzzle on
Bud.</p>
<p>“Wrong enough!” he snapped. He was looking at
Bud while answering Miss Harlan’s question. “I’m
after Squint Taylor, an’ I’m goin’ to get him—that’s all!
An’ if you folks go to interferin’ it’ll be the worse for
you!”</p>
<p>Marion stiffened and braced herself in the doorway,
her eyes wide with dread and her lips parted to ask the
question that Bud now spoke, his voice drawling slightly
with sarcasm.</p>
<p>“Taylor, eh?” he said. “What you wantin’ with
Taylor?”
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_242'></SPAN>242</span></p>
<p>“I’m wantin’ him for murderin’ Larry Harlan!”
snapped Keats.</p>
<p>Bud gulped, drew a deep breath and went pale. He
looked at Marion, and saw that the girl was terribly
moved by Keats’s words. But neither the girl nor Bud
spoke while Keats dismounted, crossed the porch, and
stopped in front of the door, which was barred by the
girl’s body.</p>
<p>“Get out of the way—I’m goin’ in!” ordered Keats.</p>
<p>The girl moved aside to let him pass, and as he crossed
the threshold she asked, weakly:</p>
<p>“How do you—how do they know Mr. Taylor killed
Larry Harlan?”</p>
<p>Keats turned on her, grinning mirthlessly.</p>
<p>“How do we know anything?” he jeered. “Evidence—that’s
what—an’ plenty of it!”</p>
<p>Keats vanished inside, and Bud, his eyes snapping
with the alert glances he threw around him, slowly backed
away from the porch toward the stable. As he turned,
after backing several feet, he saw Marion walk slowly to
a rocker that stood on the porch, drop weakly into it and
cover her face with her hands.</p>
<p>Gaining the stable, Bud worked fast; throwing a saddle
and bridle upon King, the speediest horse in the Arrow
outfit, excepting Spotted Tail.</p>
<p>With movements that he tried hard to make casual,
but with an impatience that made his heart pound heavily,
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_243'></SPAN>243</span>
he got King out and led him to the rear of the
stable.</p>
<p>Some of Keats’s men were running from one building
to another; but he was not Taylor, and they seemed to
pay no attention to him, beyond giving him sharp glances.</p>
<p>Passing behind the blacksmith-shop, Bud heard a voice
saying:</p>
<p>“Dead or alive, Keats says; an’ they’d admire to have
him dead. I heard Carrington tellin’ Keats!”</p>
<p>As the sound of the voice died away, Bud touched
King’s flank with the spurs. The big horse, after a day
in the stable, was impatient and eager for a run, and he
swept past the scattered buildings of the ranch with long,
swift leaps that took him out upon the plains before
Keats could complete his search of the first floor of the
house.</p>
<p>The two men who had searched the upper floor came
downstairs, to meet Keats in the front room. They
grimly shook their heads at Keats, and at his orders went
outside to search with the other men.</p>
<p>Keats stepped to the door, saw Marion sitting limply
in the rocking-chair, her shoulders convulsed with sobs,
and crossed to her, shaking her with a brutal arm.</p>
<p>“Where’s that guy I left standin’ there? Where’s he—Hemmingway?”</p>
<p>“I don’t know,” said the girl dully.</p>
<p>Keats cursed and ran to the edge of the porch. With
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_244'></SPAN>244</span>
his gaze sweeping the buildings, the pasture, the corrals,
and the wide stretch of plain westward, he stiffened,
calling angrily to his men:</p>
<p>“There he goes—damn him! It’s that sneakin’ Bud
Hemmingway, an’ he’s gone to tell Taylor we’re after
him! He knows where Taylor is! Get your hosses!”</p>
<p>Forced to her feet by the intense activity that followed
Keats’s loudly bellowed orders, the girl crossed the porch,
and from a point near the end railing watched Keats and
his men clamber into their saddles and race after Bud.
For a long time she watched them—a tiny blot gliding
over the plains, followed by a larger blot—and then she
walked slowly to the rocking-chair, looked down at it as
though its spaciousness invited her; then she turned from
it, entered the house, and going to her room—where
Martha was sleeping—began feverishly throwing her
few belongings into the small handbag she had brought
with her from the big house.</p>
<h2><span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_245'></SPAN>245</span><SPAN name='chXXVI' id='chXXVI'></SPAN>CHAPTER XXVI—KEATS FINDS “SQUINT”</h2>
<p>Looking back after he had been riding for some
minutes, Bud saw a dozen or more horses break
from the group of Arrow buildings and come racing
toward him, spreading out fanwise.</p>
<p>“They’ve seen me!” breathed Bud, and he leaned over
King’s shoulders and spoke to him. The animal responded
with a burst of speed that brought a smile to
Bud’s face. For the puncher knew that Taylor and Norton
couldn’t have traveled more than a few miles in the
short time that had passed since their departure; and he
knew also that in a short run—of a dozen miles or so—there
wasn’t a horse in the Dawes section that could catch
King, barring, of course, Spotted Tail, the real king of
range horses.</p>
<p>And so Bud bent eagerly to his work, not riding erect
in the saddle as is the fashion of the experienced cow-puncher
in an unfamiliar country, where pitfalls, breaks,
draws, hidden gullies, and weed-grown barrancas provide
hazards that might bring disaster. Bud knew this
section of the country as well as he knew the interior of
the bunkhouse, and with his knowledge came a confidence
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_246'></SPAN>246</span>
that nothing would happen to him or King, except possibly
a slip into a gopher hole.</p>
<p>And Bud kept scanning the country far enough ahead
to keep King from running into a gopher town. He
swung the animal wide in passing them—for he knew
it was the habit of these denizens of the plains to extend
their habitat—some venturesome and independent spirits
straying far from the huddle and congestion of the
multitude.</p>
<p>Bud looked back many times during the first two miles,
and he saw that Keats and his men were losing ground;
their horses could not keep the pace set by the big bay
flier under Bud.</p>
<p>And King was not going as he could go when the necessity
arrived. This ride was a frolic for the big bay, and
yet Bud knew he must not force him, that he must conserve
his wind, for if Taylor and Norton had yielded to
a whim to hurry, even King would need all his speed and
endurance to hang on. For the sorrel that had accompanied
Spotted Tail was not so greatly inferior to King
that the latter could take liberties with him.</p>
<p>Bud gloated as he looked back after he had covered
another mile. Keats and his men were still losing ground,
though they were not so very far back, either—Bud
could almost see the faces of the men. But that, Bud
knew, was due to the marvelous clarity of the atmosphere.</p>
<p>When the sides of the big hills surrounding the level
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_247'></SPAN>247</span>
began to sweep inward rapidly, Bud knew that the grass
level was coming to an end, and that presently he would
strike a long stretch of broken country. Beyond that
was a big valley, rich and fertile, in which, according to
report, the Arrow herd should be grazing, guarded by
the men of the outfit, under Bothwell. But Kelso Basin
was still nine or ten miles distant, and Bud did not yet
dare to let the big bay horse run his best.</p>
<p>Still, when they flashed by a huge promontory that
stood sentinel-like above the waters of the river—a spot
well remembered by Bud, because many times while on
day duty he had lain prone on its top smoking and dreaming—King
was running as lightly as a leaf before the
hurricane.</p>
<p>King had entered the section of broken country, with
its beds of rock and lava, and huge boulders strewn here
and there, relics of gigantic upheavals when the earth
was young; and Bud was skilfully directing King to the
stretches of smooth level that he found here and there,
when far ahead he saw Taylor and Norton.</p>
<p>In ten minutes he was within hailing distance, and he
grinned widely when, hearing him, they pulled their
horses to a halt and, wheeling, faced him.</p>
<p>For Bud saw that they had reached a spot which would
make an admirable defensive position, should Taylor
decide to resist Keats. The hills, in their gradual inward
sweep, were close together, so that their crests seemed to
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_248'></SPAN>248</span>
nod to one another. And a little farther down, Bud knew,
they formed a gorge, which still farther on merged into a
cañon. It was an ideal position for a stand—if Taylor
would stand and not run for it; and he rather thought
Taylor would not run.</p>
<p>Taylor had ridden toward Bud, and was a hundred
feet in advance of Norton when Bud pulled King to a
halt, shouting:</p>
<p>“Keats and a dozen men are right behind me—a mile;
mebbe two! He’s got a warrant for you, chargin’ you
with murderin’ Larry Harlan! I heard one of his scum
sayin’ it was to be a clean-up!”</p>
<p>Taylor laughed; he did not seem to be at all interested
in Keats or his men, who at that instant were riding at a
pace that was likely to kill their horses, should they be
forced to maintain it.</p>
<p>“Who accused me of murdering Harlan?”</p>
<p>“Keats didn’t say. But I heard a guy sayin’ that Carrington
was wantin’ Keats to take you dead!”</p>
<p>The cold gleam in Taylor’s eyes and the slight, stiff
grin that wreathed his lips, indicated that he had determined
that Keats would have to kill him before taking
him.</p>
<p>“A dozen of them, eh?” he said, looking from Bud to
Norton deliberately. “Well, that’s a bunch for three
men to fight, but it isn’t enough to run from. We’ll stay
here and have it out with them. That is,” he added with
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_249'></SPAN>249</span>
a quick, quizzical look at the two men, “if one of you is
determined to stay.”</p>
<p>“One of us?” flared Bud. He gazed hard at Norton,
with suspicion and belligerence in his glance. Norton
flushed at the look. “I reckon we’ll both be in at the
finish,” added Bud.</p>
<p>“Only one,” declared Taylor. “We might hold a
dozen men off here for a good many hours. But if they
were wise and patient they’d get us. One man will light
out for Kelso Basin to get the outfit. Settle it between
you, but be quick about it!”</p>
<p>Taylor swung down from his horse, led the animal out
of sight behind a jutting crag into a sort of pocket in the
side of the gorge, where there would be no danger of the
magnificent beast being struck by a bullet. Taylor pulled
his rifle from its saddle-sheath, examined the mechanism,
looked at his pistols, and then returned to where
Bud Hemmingway and Neil Norton sat on their
horses.</p>
<p>Bud’s face was flushed and Norton was grinning. And
at just the instant Taylor came in sight of them Norton
was saying:</p>
<p>“Well, if you insist, I suppose I shall have to go to
Kelso. There isn’t time to argue.”</p>
<p>Norton wheeled his horse, and, with a quick grin at
Taylor, sent the animal clattering down the gorge.</p>
<p>Bud’s grin at Taylor was pregnant with guilt.
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_250'></SPAN>250</span></p>
<p>“Norton didn’t want me to stay. There’s lots of stubborn
cusses in the world—now, ain’t they?”</p>
<p>Taylor’s answering smile showed that he understood.</p>
<p>“Get King back here with Spotted Tail, Bud!” he
directed. “And take that pile of rocks for cover. They’re
coming!”</p>
<p>By the time Bud did as he had been bidden, and was
crouching behind a huge mound of broken rock on the
north side of the gorge, Taylor on the southern side, with
a twenty-foot passage on the comparatively level floor of
the gorge between them, and an uninterrupted sweep of
narrow level in front of them, except for here and there
a jutting rock or a boulder, they saw Keats and his men
just entering the stretch of broken country.</p>
<p>The horses of the pursuing outfit were doing their best.
They came on over the stretch of treacherous trail, laboring,
pounding and clattering; singly sometimes, two and
three abreast where there was room, keeping well together,
their riders urging them with quirt and spur. For
far back on the trail they had lost sight of Bud, though
Keats had remembered that Bud had said Taylor had gone
to Kelso Basin, and therefore Keats knew he was on the
right trail.</p>
<p>However, he did not want to let Bud get to Kelso before
him to warn the Arrow outfit; for that would mean a
desperate battle with a force equal in numbers to his own.
Keats fought best when the advantages were with him,
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_251'></SPAN>251</span>
and he knew his men were similarly constituted. And
so he was riding as hard as he dared, hoping that something
would happen to Bud’s horse—that the animal
might become winded or fall. A man could not tell what
<em>might</em> happen in a pursuit of this character.</p>
<p>But the thing that <em>did</em> happen had not figured in Keats’s
lurid conjectures at all. That was why, when he heard
Taylor’s quick challenge, he pulled his horse up sharply,
so that the animal slipped several feet and came to a halt
sidewise.</p>
<p>Keats’s unexpected halt brought confusion to his followers.
A dozen of them, crowding Keats hard, and not
noticing their leader’s halt in time, rode straight against
him, their horses jamming the narrow gorge, kicking,
snorting and squealing in a disordered and uncontrollable
mass.</p>
<p>When the tangle had been magically undone—the
magic being Taylor’s voice again, burdened with sarcasm
bearing upon their excitement—Keats found himself
nearest the nest of rocks from behind which Taylor’s
voice seemed to come.</p>
<p>The jutting crag behind which Taylor had concealed
his horse, and where Bud had led King, completely obstructed
Keats’s view of the gorge behind the crag, toward
Kelso Basin, and Keats did not know but that the entire
Arrow outfit was concealed behind the rocks and boulders
that littered the level in the vicinity.
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_252'></SPAN>252</span></p>
<p>And so he sat motionless, slowly and respectfully raising
his hands. Noting his action, his men did likewise.</p>
<p>“That’s polite,” came Taylor’s voice coldly. “Hemmingway
says you’re looking for me. What for?”</p>
<p>“I’ve got a warrant for you, chargin’ you with murderin’
Larry Harlan.”</p>
<p>“Who accused me?”</p>
<p>“Mint Morton, of Nogel.”</p>
<p>There was a long silence. Behind the clump of rock
Taylor smiled mirthlessly at Bud, who was watching
him. For Taylor knew Mint Morton, of Nogel, as a
gambler, unscrupulous and dishonest. He had earned
Morton’s hatred when one night in a Nogel saloon he
had caught Morton cheating and had forced him to disgorge
his winnings. His victim had been a miner on his
way East with the earnings of five years in his pockets.
Taylor had not been able to endure the spectacle of abject
despair that had followed the man’s loss of all his money.</p>
<p>Taylor did not know that Carrington had hunted Morton
up, paying him well to bring the murder charge, but
Taylor did know that he was innocent of murder; and
by linking Morton with Carrington he could readily understand
why Keats wanted him. He broke the silence
with a short:</p>
<p>“Who issued the warrant?”</p>
<p>“Judge Littlefield.”</p>
<p>“Well,” said Taylor, “you can take it right back to
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_253'></SPAN>253</span>
him and tell him to let Carrington serve it. For,” he
added, a note of grim humor creeping into his voice, “I’m
a heap particular about such things, Keats. I couldn’t
let a sneak like you take me in. And I don’t like the
looks of that dirty-looking outfit with you. And so I’m
telling you a few things. I’m giving you one minute to
hit the breeze out of this section. If you’re here when
that time is up, I down <em>you</em>, Keats! Slope!”</p>
<p>Keats flashed one glance around at his men. Some of
them already had their horses in motion; others were
nervously fingering their bridle-reins. Keats sneered at
the rock nest ahead of him.</p>
<p>The intense silence which followed Taylor’s warning
lasted about ten seconds. Then Keats’s face paled; he
wheeled his horse and sent it scampering over the back
trail, his men following, crowding him hard.</p>
<h2><span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_254'></SPAN>254</span><SPAN name='chXXVII' id='chXXVII'></SPAN>CHAPTER XXVII—BESIEGED</h2>
<p>Hemmingway tentatively suggested that a ride
through the gorge toward the Kelso Basin might
simplify matters for himself and Taylor; it might, he
said, even seem to make the defending of their position
unnecessary. But his suggestions met with no enthusiasm
from Taylor, who lounged among the rocks of his place
of concealment calmly smoking.</p>
<p>Taylor gave some reasons for his disinclination to adopt
Hemmingway’s suggestions.</p>
<p>“Norton will be back in an hour, with Bothwell and
the outfit.” And now he grinned as he looked at Bud.
“Miss Harlan told me to be careful about my scratches.
I take it she don’t want no more sieges with a sick man.
And I’m taking her advice. If I’d go to riding my horse
like blazes, maybe I <em>would</em> get sick again. And she
wouldn’t take care of me anymore. And I’d hate like
blazes to run from Keats and his bunch of plug-uglies!”</p>
<p>So Hemmingway said no more on that subject.</p>
<p>They smoked and talked and watched the trail for signs
of Keats and his men; while the sun, which had been
behind the towering hills surrounding the gorge, traveled
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_255'></SPAN>255</span>
slowly above them, finally blazing down from a point
directly overhead.</p>
<p>It became hot in the gorge; the air was stifling and the
heat uncomfortable. Taylor did not seem to mind it, but
Bud, with a vigorous appetite, and longings that ran to
flapjacks and sirup, grew impatient.</p>
<p>“If a man could eat now,” he remarked once, while
the sun was directly overhead, “why, it wouldn’t be so
bad!”</p>
<p>And then, after the sun’s blazing rays had begun to
diminish in intensity somewhat, Bud looked upward and
saw that the shimmering orb had passed beyond the crest
of a towering hill. He looked sharply at Taylor, who was
intently watching the back trail, and said gravely:</p>
<p>“Norton ought to have been back with Bothwell and
the bunch, now.”</p>
<p>“He’s an hour overdue,” said Taylor, without looking
at Bud.</p>
<p>“I reckon somethin’s happened,” growled Bud.
“Somethin’ always happens when a guy’s holed up, like
this. It wouldn’t be so bad if a man could eat a little
somethin’—to sort of keep him from thinkin’ of it all
the time. Or, mebbe, if there was a little excitement—or
somethin’. A man could——”</p>
<p>“There’ll be plenty of excitement before long,” interrupted
Taylor. “Keats and his gang didn’t go very far.
I just saw one of them sneaking along that rock-knob,
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_256'></SPAN>256</span>
down the gorge a piece. They’re going to stalk us. If
you’re thinking of riding to Kelso—why—” He grinned
at Bud’s resentful scowl.</p>
<p>Lying flat on his stomach, he watched the rock-knob he
had mentioned.</p>
<p>“Slick as an Indian,” he remarked once, while Bud,
having ceased his discontented mutterings, kept his gaze
on the rock also.</p>
<p>And then suddenly the eery silence of the gorge was
broken by the sharp crack of Taylor’s rifle, and, simultaneously,
by a shriek of pain. Report and shriek reverberated
with weird, echoing cadences between the hills,
growing less distinct always and finally the eery silence
reigned again.</p>
<p>“They’ll know they can’t get careless, now,” grinned
Taylor, working the ejector of his rifle.</p>
<p>Bud did not reply; and for another hour both men intently
scanned the hills within range of their vision,
straining their eyes to detect signs of movement that
would warn them of the whereabouts of Keats and his
men.</p>
<p>Anxiously Bud watched the rays of the sun creeping
up a precipitous rock wall at a little distance. Slowly the
streak of light narrowed, growing always less brilliant,
and finally, when it vanished, Bud spoke:</p>
<p>“It’s comin’ on night, Squint. Somethin’s sure happened
to Norton.” He wriggled impatiently, adding:
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_257'></SPAN>257</span>
“If we’re here when night comes we’ll have a picnic
keepin’ them guys off of us.”</p>
<p>Taylor said nothing until the gorge began to darken
with the shadows of twilight. Then he looked at Bud, his
face grim.</p>
<p>“My stubbornness,” he said shortly. “I should have
taken your advice about going to Kelso Basin—when we
had a chance. But I felt certain that Norton would have
the outfit here before this. Our chance is gone, now.
There are some of Keats’s men in the hills, around us. I
just saw one jump behind that rim rock on the shoulder
of that big hill—there.” He indicated the spot. Then
he again spoke to Bud.</p>
<p>“There’s a chance yet—for you. You take Spotted
Tail and make a run for the basin. I’ll cover you.”</p>
<p>“What about you?” grumbled Bud.</p>
<p>Taylor grinned, and Bud laughed. “You was only
funnin’ me, I reckon,” he said, earnestly. “You knowed
I wouldn’t slope an’ leave you to fight it out alone—now
didn’t you?”</p>
<p>“But if a man was hungry,” said Taylor, “and he knew
there was grub with the outfit——”</p>
<p>“I ain’t hungry no more,” declared Bud; “I’ve quit
thinkin’ of flapjacks for more than——”</p>
<p>He stiffened, and the first shadows of the night were
split by a long, narrow flame-streak as his rifle crashed.
And a man who had been slipping into the shelter of a
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_258'></SPAN>258</span>
depression on the side of a hill a hundred yards distant,
tumbled grotesquely out and down, and went sliding to
the bottom of the gorge.</p>
<p>As though the report of Bud’s rifle were a signal, a
dozen vivid jets of fire flamed from various points in the
surrounding hills, and the silence was rent by the vicious
cracking of rifles and the drone and thud of bullets as
they sped over the heads of the two men at the bottom
of the gorge and flattened themselves against the rocks
of their shelter.</p>
<p>That sound, too, died away. And in the heavy, portentous
stillness which succeeded it, there came to the ears
of the two besieged men the sounds of distant shouting,
faint and far.</p>
<p>“It’s the outfit!” said Taylor.</p>
<p>And Bud, rolling over and over in an excess of joy
over the coming of the Arrow men, hugged an imaginary
form and yelled:</p>
<p>“Oh, Bothwell, you old son-of-a-gun! How I love
you!”</p>
<h2><span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_259'></SPAN>259</span><SPAN name='chXXVIII' id='chXXVIII'></SPAN>CHAPTER XXVIII—THE FUGITIVE</h2>
<p>One thought dominated Marion Harlan’s brain as
she packed her belongings into the little handbag
in her room at the Arrow—an overpowering, monstrous,
hideous conviction that she had accepted charity from
the man who was accused of murdering her father! There
was no room in her brain for other thoughts or emotions;
she was conscious of nothing but the horror of it; of the
terrible uncertainty that confronted her—of the dread
that Taylor <em>might</em> be guilty! She wanted to believe in
him—she <em>did</em> believe in him, she told herself as she
packed the bag; she could not accept the word of Keats as
final. And yet she could not stay at the Arrow another
minute—she could not endure the uncertainty. She must
go away somewhere—anywhere, until the charge were
proved, or until she could see Taylor, to look into his eyes,
there to see his guilt or innocence.</p>
<p>She felt that the charge could not be true; for Taylor
had treated her so fairly; he had been so sympathetically
friendly; he had seemed to share her grief over her
father’s death, and he had seemed so sincere in his declaration
of his friendliness toward the man. He had
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_260'></SPAN>260</span>
even seemed to share her grief; and in the hallowed moments
during which he had stood beside her while she
had looked into her father’s room, he might have been
secretly laughing at her!</p>
<p>And into her heart as she stood in the room, now, there
crept a mighty shame—and the shadow of her mother’s
misconduct never came so close as it did now. For she,
too, had violated the laws of propriety; and what she was
receiving was not more than her just due. And yet,
though she could blame herself for coming to the Arrow,
she could not excuse Taylor’s heinous conduct if he were
guilty.</p>
<p>And then, the first fierce passion burning itself out,
there followed the inevitable reaction—the numbing,
staggering, sorrowing realization of loss. This in turn
was succeeded by a frenzied desire to go away from the
Arrow—from everybody and everything—to some place
where none of them would ever see her again.</p>
<p>She started toward the door, and met Parsons—who
was looking for her. He darted forward when he saw
her, and grasped her by the shoulders.</p>
<p>“What has happened?” he demanded.</p>
<p>She told him, and the man’s face whitened.</p>
<p>“I was asleep, and heard nothing of it,” he said. “So
that man Keats said they had plenty of evidence! You
are going away? I wouldn’t, girl; there may have been
a mistake. If I were you——”
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_261'></SPAN>261</span></p>
<p>Her glance of horror brought Parsons’ protests to an
end quickly. He, too, she thought, was under the spell
of Taylor’s magnetism. That, or every person she knew
was a prey to those vicious and fawning instincts to
which she had yielded—the subordination of principle
to greed—of ease, or of wealth, or of place.</p>
<p>She shuddered with sudden repugnance.</p>
<p>For the first time she had a doubt of Parsons—a revelation
of that character which he had always succeeded in
keeping hidden from her. She drew away from him and
walked to the door, telling him that <em>he</em> might stay, but
that she did not intend to remain in the house another
minute.</p>
<p>She found a horse in the stable—two, in fact—the
ones Taylor had insisted belonged to her and Martha.
She threw saddle and bridle on hers, and was mounting,
when she saw Martha standing at the stable door,
watching her.</p>
<p>“Yo’ uncle says you goin’ away, honey—how’s that?
An’ he done say somethin’ about Mr. Squint killin’ your
father. Doan’ you b’lieve no fool nonsense like that!
Mr. Squint wouldn’t kill nobody’s father! That deputy
man ain’t nothin’ but a damn, no-good liar!”</p>
<p>Martha’s vehemence was genuine, but not convincing;
and the girl mounted the horse, hanging the handbag
from the pommel of the saddle.</p>
<p>“You’s sure goin’!” screamed the negro woman, frantic
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_262'></SPAN>262</span>
with a dread that she was in danger of losing the girl
for whom she had formed a deep affection.</p>
<p>“You wait—you hear!” she demanded; “if you leave
this house I’s a goin’, too!”</p>
<p>Marion waited until Martha led the other horse out,
and then, with the negro woman following, she rode
eastward on the Dawes trail, not once looking back.</p>
<p>And not a word did she say to Martha as they rode
into the space that stretched to Dawes, for the girl’s heart
was heavy with self-accusation.</p>
<p>They stopped for an instant at Mullarky’s cabin, and
Mrs. Mullarky drew from the girl the story of the morning’s
happenings. And like Martha, Mrs. Mullarky had
an abiding faith in Taylor’s innocence. More—she
scorned the charge of murder against him.</p>
<p>“Squint Taylor murder your father, child! Why,
Squint Taylor thought more of Larry Harlan than he
does of his right hand. An’ you ain’t goin’ to run away
from him—for the very good reason that I ain’t goin’
to let you! You’re upset—that’s what—an’ you can’t
think as straight as you ought to. You come right in here
an’ sip a cup of tea, an’ take a rest. I’ll put your horses
away. If you don’t want to stay at the Arrow while
Taylor, the judge, an’ all the rest of them are pullin’ the
packin’ out of that case, why, you can stay right here!”</p>
<p>Yielding to the insistent demands of the good woman,
Marion meekly consented and went inside. And Mrs.
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_263'></SPAN>263</span>
Mullarky tried to make her comfortable, and attempted
to soothe her and assure her of Taylor’s innocence.</p>
<p>But the girl was not convinced; and late in the afternoon,
despite Mrs. Mullarky’s protests, she again mounted
her horse and, followed by Martha, set out toward Dawes,
intending to take the first east-bound train out of the
town, to ride as far as the meager amount of money in
her purse would take her. And as she rode, the sun
went down behind the big hill on whose crest sat the big
house, looming down upon the level from its lofty eminence;
and the twilight came, bathing the world with its
somber promise of greater darkness to follow. But the
darkness that was coming over the world could not be
greater than that which reigned in the girl’s heart.</p>
<h2><span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_264'></SPAN>264</span><SPAN name='chXXIX' id='chXXIX'></SPAN>CHAPTER XXIX—THE CAPTIVE</h2>
<p>Carrington’s experiences with Taylor had not
dulled the man’s savage impulses, nor had they
cooled his feverish desire for the possession of Marion
Harlan. In his brain rioted the dark, unbridled passions
of those progenitors he had claimed in his talk with
Parsons on the morning he had throttled the little man
in his rooms above the Castle.</p>
<p>For the moment he had postponed the real beginning
of his campaign for the possession of Dawes, his venomous
hatred for Taylor and his passion for the girl
overwhelming his greed.</p>
<p>He had watched the departure of Keats and his men,
a flush of exultation on his face, his eyes alight with fires
that reflected the malignant hatred he felt. And when
Keats and the others disappeared down the trail that led
to the Arrow, Carrington spent some time in Dawes.
Shortly after noon he rode out the river trail toward the
big house with two men that he had engaged to set the
interior in order.</p>
<p>Carrington had not seen the house since the fight with
Taylor in the front room, and the wreck and ruin that
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_265'></SPAN>265</span>
met his gaze as he stood in the door brought a sullen
pout to his lips.</p>
<p>But he intended to exact heavy punishment for what
had occurred at the big house; and as he watched the
men setting things to order—mending the doors and
repairing the broken furniture—he drew mental pictures
that made his eyes flash with pleasure.</p>
<p>He felt that by this time Keats and his men should
have settled with Taylor. After that, he, himself, would
make the girl pay.</p>
<p>So he was having the house put in order, that it would
again be habitable; and then, when that was done, and
Taylor out of the way, he would go to the Arrow after
the girl. But before he went to the Arrow he would
await the return of Keats with the news that Taylor
would no longer be able to thwart him.</p>
<p>Never in his life had he met a man he feared as he
feared Taylor. There was something about Taylor that
made Carrington’s soul shrivel. He knew what it was—it
was his conviction of Taylor’s absolute honorableness,
as arrayed against his own beastly impulses. But that
knowledge merely served to intensify his hatred for
Taylor.</p>
<p>Toward evening Carrington rode back to Dawes with
the men; and while there he sought news from Keats.
Danforth, from whom he inquired, could tell him nothing,
and so Carrington knew that Taylor had not yet been
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_266'></SPAN>266</span>
disposed of. But Carrington knew the time would not
be long now; and in a resort of a questionable character
he found two men who listened eagerly to his proposals.
Later, the two men accompanying him, he again rode to
the big house.</p>
<p>And just as dusk began to settle over the big level at
the foot of the long slope—and while the last glowing
light from the day still softly bathed the big house,
throwing it into bold relief on the crest of its flat-topped
hill, Carrington was standing on the front
porch, impatiently scanning the basin for signs of Keats
and his men.</p>
<p>For a time he could distinguish little in the basin, for
the mists of twilight were heavy down there. And then
a moving object far out in the basin caught his gaze, and
he leaned forward, peering intently, consumed with eagerness
and curiosity.</p>
<p>A few minutes later, still staring into the basin,
Carrington became aware that there were two moving
objects. They were headed toward Dawes, and proceeding
slowly; and at last, when they came nearer and he
saw they were two women, on horses, he stiffened
and shaded his eyes with his hands. And then he exclaimed
sharply, and his eyes glowed with triumph—for
he had recognized the women as Marion Harlan and
Martha.</p>
<p>Moving slowly, so that he might not attract the attention
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_267'></SPAN>267</span>
of the women, should they happen to be looking
toward the big house, he went inside and spoke shortly
to the two men he had brought with him.</p>
<p>An instant later the three, Carrington leading, rode
into the timber surrounding the house, filed silently
through it, and with their horses in a slow trot, sank down
the long slope that led into the big basin.</p>
<p>For a time they were not visible, as they worked their
way through the chaparral on a little level near the bottom
of the slope; and then they came into view again in some
tall saccaton grass that grew as high as the backs of their
horses.</p>
<p>They might have been swimming in that much water,
for all the sound they made as they headed through the
grass toward the Dawes trail, for they made no sound,
and only their heads and the heads of their horses
appeared above the swaying grass.</p>
<p>But they were seen. Martha, riding at a little distance
behind Marion, and straining her eyes to watch the trail
ahead, noted the movement in the saccaton, and called
sharply to the girl:</p>
<p>“They’s somethin’ movin’ in that grass off to your
right, honey! It wouldn’t be no cattle, heah; they’s never
no cattle round heah, fo’ they ain’t no water. Lawsey!”
she exclaimed, as she got a clear view of them; “it’s
men!”</p>
<p>Marion halted her horse. Martha’s voice had startled
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_268'></SPAN>268</span>
her, for she had not been thinking of the present; her
thoughts had been centered on Taylor.</p>
<p>A shiver of trepidation ran over her, though, when
she saw the men, and she gathered the reins tightly in her
hands, ready to wheel the animal under her should the
appearance of the men indicate the imminence of danger.</p>
<p>And when she saw that danger did indeed threaten, she
spoke to the horse and turned it toward the back trail.
For she had recognized one of the three men as
Carrington.</p>
<p>But the horse had not taken a dozen leaps before Carrington
was beside her, his hand at her bridle. And as
her horse came to a halt, Carrington’s animal lunged
against it, bringing the two riders close together. Carrington
leaned over, his face close to hers; she could feel
his breath in her face as he laughed jeeringly, his voice
vibrating with passion:</p>
<p>“So it <em>is</em> you, eh? I thought for a moment that I had
made a mistake!” Holding to her horse’s bridle-rein
with a steady pull that kept the horses close together, he
spoke sharply to the two men who had halted near
Martha: “Get the nigger! I’ll take care of this one!”</p>
<p>And instantly, with a brutal, ruthless strength and
energy that took the girl completely by surprise, Carrington
threw a swift arm out, grasped her by the waist, drew
her out of the saddle, and swung her into his own, crosswise,
so that she lay face up, looking at him.
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_269'></SPAN>269</span></p>
<p>She fought him then, silently, ferociously, though
futilely. For he caught her hands, using both his own,
pinning hers so that she could not use them, meanwhile
laughing lowly at her efforts to escape.</p>
<p>Even in the dusk she could see the smiling, savage
exultation in his eyes; the gloating, vindictive triumph,
and her soul revolted at the horror in store for her, and
the knowledge nerved her to another mighty effort. Tearing
her hands free, she fought him again, scratching his
face, striking him with all her force with her fists;
squirming and twisting, even biting one of his hands when
it came close to her lips as he essayed to grasp her throat,
his eyes gleaming with ruthless malignance.</p>
<p>But her efforts availed little. In the end her arms were
pinned again to her sides, and he pulled a rope from his
saddle-horn and bound them. Then, as she lay back and
glared at him, muttering imprecations that brought a
mocking smile to his lips, he urged his horse forward,
and sent it clattering up the slope, the two men following
with Martha.</p>
<h2><span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_270'></SPAN>270</span><SPAN name='chXXX' id='chXXX'></SPAN>CHAPTER XXX—PARSONS HAS HUMAN INSTINCTS</h2>
<p>Elam Parsons stood on the front porch of the
Arrow ranchhouse for a long time after Marion and
Martha departed, watching them as they slowly negotiated
the narrow trail that led toward Dawes. Something
of the man’s guilt assailed his consciousness as he stood
there—a conception of the miserable part he had played
in the girl’s life.</p>
<p>No doubt had not Fate and Carrington played a mean
trick on Parsons, in robbing him of his money and his
prospects, the man would not have entertained the
thoughts he entertained at this moment; for success would
have made a reckoning with conscience a remote possibility,
dim and far.</p>
<p>And perhaps it was not conscience that was now
troubling Parsons; at least Parsons did not lay the burden
of his present thoughts upon so intangible a chimera.
Parsons was too much of a materialist to admit he had
a conscience.</p>
<p>But a twinge of something seized Parsons as he
watched the girl ride away, and bitter thoughts racked
his soul. He could not, however, classify his emotions,
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_271'></SPAN>271</span>
and so he stood there on the porch, undecided, vacillating,
in the grip of a vague disquiet.</p>
<p>Parsons sat on the porch until long after noon; for,
after Marion and Martha had vanished into the haze of
distance, Parsons dropped into a chair and let his chin
sink to his chest.</p>
<p>He did not get up to prepare food for himself; he did
not think of eating, for the big, silent ranchhouse and the
gloomy, vacant appearance of the other buildings drew
the man’s attention to the aching emptiness of his own
life. He had sought to gain everything—scheming,
planning, plotting dishonestly; taking unfair advantage;
robbing people without compunction—and he had gained
nothing. Yes—he had gained Carrington’s contempt!</p>
<p>The recollection of Carrington’s treatment of him fired
his passions with a thousand licking, leaping flames. In
his gloomy meditations over the departure of the girl,
he had almost forgotten Carrington. But he thought of
Carrington now; and he sat stiff and rigid in the chair,
glowering, his lips in a pout, his soul searing with hatred.</p>
<p>But even the nursing of that passion failed to satisfy
Parsons. Something lacked. There was still that conviction
of utter baseness—his own baseness—to torture
him. And at last, toward evening, he discovered that he
longed for the girl. He wanted to be near her; he wanted
to do something for her to undo the wrong he had done
her; he wanted to make some sort of reparation.
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_272'></SPAN>272</span></p>
<p>So the man assured himself. But he knew that deep
in his inner consciousness lurked the dread knowledge
that Taylor was aware of his baseness. For Taylor had
overheard the conversation between Carrington and himself
on the train, and Parsons feared that should Taylor
by any chance escape Keats and his men and return to the
Arrow to find Marion gone, he would vent his rage and
fury upon the man who had sinned against the woman
he loved. That was the emotion which dominated Parsons
as he sat on the porch; it was the emotion that made
the man fervently desire to make reparation to the girl;
it was the emotion that finally moved him out of his chair
and upon a horse that he found in the stable, to ride
toward Dawes in the hope of finding her.</p>
<p>Parsons, too, stopped at the Mullarky cabin. He discovered
that Marion had left there shortly before, after
having refused Mrs. Mullarky’s proffer of shelter until
the charge against Taylor could be disproved.</p>
<p>Parsons listened impatiently to the woman’s voluble
defense of Taylor, and her condemnation of Keats and
all those who were leagued against the Arrow owner.
And then Parsons rode on.</p>
<p>Far out in the basin, indistinct in the twilight haze,
he saw Marion and Martha riding toward Dawes, and he
urged his horse in an effort to come up with them before
they reached the bottom of the long, gradual rise that
would take them into town.
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_273'></SPAN>273</span></p>
<p>Parsons had got within half a mile of them when he
saw them halt and wait the coming of three horsemen,
who advanced toward them from the opposite direction.
Parsons did not feel like joining the group, for just at
that moment he felt as though he could not bear to have
anyone see his face—they might have discovered the
guilt in it—and so he waited.</p>
<p>He saw the three men ride close to the other riders;
he watched in astonishment while one of the strange
riders pursued one of the women, catching her.</p>
<p>Parsons saw it all. But he did not ride forward, for
he was in the grip of a mighty terror that robbed him
of power to move. For he knew one of the strange
riders was Carrington. He would have recognized him
among a thousand other men.</p>
<p>Parsons watched the three men climb the big slope
that led to the great house on the flat-topped hill. For
many minutes after they had reached the crest of the hill
Parsons sat motionless on his horse, gazing upward. And
when he saw a light flare up in one of the rooms of the
big house, he cursed, his face convulsed with impotent
rage.</p>
<hr class='tb' />
<p>Marion Harlan did not yield to the overpowering weakness
that seized her after she realized that further resistance
to Carrington would be useless. And instead of
yielding to the hysteria that threatened her, she clenched
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_274'></SPAN>274</span>
her hands and bit her lips in an effort to retain her composure.
She succeeded. And during the progress of her
captor’s horse up the long slope she kept a good grip on
herself, fortifying herself against what might come when
she and her captor reached the big house.</p>
<p>When they reached the crest of the hill, Carrington
ordered the two men to take Martha around to the back
of the house and confine her in one of the rooms. One
man was to guard her. The other was to wait on the
front porch until Carrington called him.</p>
<p>The girl had decided to make one more struggle when
Carrington dismounted with her, but though she fought
hard and bitterly, she did not succeed in escaping Carrington,
and the latter finally lifted her in his arms and
carried her into the front room, the room in which Carrington
had fought with Taylor the day Taylor had killed
the three men who had ambushed him.</p>
<p>Carrington lighted a lamp—it was this light Parsons
had seen from the basin—placed it on a shelf, and in its
light grinned triumphantly at the girl.</p>
<p>“Well, we are here,” he said.</p>
<p>In his voice was that passion that had been in it that
other time, when he had pursued her into the house, and
she had escaped him by hiding in the attic. She cringed
from him, backing away a little, and, noting the movement,
he laughed hoarsely.</p>
<p>“Don’t worry,” he said, “at least for an hour or two.
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_275'></SPAN>275</span>
I’ve got something more important on my mind. Do you
know what it is?” he demanded, grinning hugely. “It’s
Taylor!” He suddenly seemed to remember that he did
not know why she had been abroad at dusk on the Dawes
trail, and he came close to her.</p>
<p>“Did you see Keats today?”</p>
<p>She did not answer, meeting his gaze fairly, her eyes
flashing with scorn and contempt. But he knew from
the flame in her eyes that she had seen Keats, and he
laughed derisively.</p>
<p>“So you saw him,” he jeered; “and you know that
he came for Taylor. Did he find Taylor at the Arrow?”</p>
<p>Again she did not answer, and he went on, suspecting
that Taylor had not been at the Arrow, and that Keats
had gone to search for him. “No, Keats didn’t find
him—that’s plain enough. I should have enjoyed being
there to hear Keats tell you that Taylor had killed your
father. You heard that, didn’t you? Yes,” he added, his
grin broadening; “you heard that. So that’s why you
left the Arrow! Well, I don’t blame you for leaving.”</p>
<p>He turned toward the door and wheeled again to face
her. “You’ll enjoy this,” he sneered; “you’ve been so
thick with Taylor. Bah!” he added as he saw her face
redden at the insult; “I’ve known where you stood with
Taylor ever since I caught you flirting with him on
the station platform the day we came to Dawes. That’s
why you went to the Arrow from here—refusing my
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_276'></SPAN>276</span>
attentions to <em>give</em> yourself to the man who killed your
father!”</p>
<p>He laughed, and saw her writhe under the sound of it.</p>
<p>“It hurts, eh?” he said venomously; “well, this will
hurt, too. Keats went out to get Taylor, but he will never
bring Taylor in—alive. He has orders to kill him—understand?
That’s why I’ve got more important business
than you to attend to for the next few hours. I’m
going to Dawes to find out if Keats has returned. And
when Keats comes in with the news that Taylor is done
for, I’m coming back here for you!”</p>
<p>Calling the man who was waiting on the porch, Carrington
directed him to watch the girl; and then, with a
last grin at her, he went out, mounted his horse, and rode
the trail toward Dawes. And as he rode, he laughed
maliciously, for he had not told her that the charge against
Taylor was a false one, and that, so far as he knew,
Taylor was not guilty of murdering her father.</p>
<h2><span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_277'></SPAN>277</span><SPAN name='chXXXI' id='chXXXI'></SPAN>CHAPTER XXXI—A RESCUE</h2>
<p>An early moon stuck a pallid rim over the crest
of the big, hill-like plateau as Parsons sat on his
horse in the basin, and Parsons watched it rise in its
silvery splendor and bathe the world with an effulgent
glow. It threw house and timber on the plateau crest in
bold relief, a dark silhouette looming against a flood of
shimmering light, and Parsons could see the porch he
knew so well, and could even distinguish the break in the
timber that led to the house, which merged into the trail
that stretched to Dawes.</p>
<p>Parsons was still laboring with the devils of indecision
and doubt. He knew why Carrington had captured
Marion, and he yearned to take the girl from the man—for
her own sake, and for the purpose of satisfying his
vengeance. But he knew that certain death awaited him
up there should he venture to show himself to Carrington.
And yet a certain desperate courage stole into Parsons as
he watched from the basin, and when, about half an hour
after he had seen the flicker of light filter out of one of the
windows of the house, he saw a man emerge, mount a
horse, and ride away, he drew a deep breath of resolution
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_278'></SPAN>278</span>
and urged his own horse up the slope. For the man who
had mounted the horse up there was Carrington—there
could be no doubt of that.</p>
<p>Shivering, though still obeying the courageous impulse
that had seized him, Parsons continued to ascend the
slope. He went half way and then halted, listening. No
sound disturbed the solemn stillness that had followed
Carrington’s departure.</p>
<p>Reassured, though by this time he was sweating coldly,
Parsons accomplished the remainder of the intervening
space upward. Far back in the timber he brought his
horse to a halt, dismounted, and again listened. Hearing
nothing that alarmed him, except a loud, angry voice
from the rear of the house—a voice which he knew as
Martha’s—he cautiously made his way to the front
porch, tiptoed across it, and peered stealthily into the
room out of which the light still shone, its flickering rays
stabbing weakly into the outside darkness.</p>
<p>Looking into the room, Parsons could see Marion sitting
in a chair. Her hands were bound, and she was
leaning back in the chair, her hair disheveled, her face
chalk-white, and her eyes filled with a haunting, terrible
dread. Near the door, likewise seated on a chair, his
back to the big room that adjoined the one in which he
sat, was a villainous-looking man who was watching the
girl with a leering grin.</p>
<p>The sight brought a murderous passion into Parsons’
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_279'></SPAN>279</span>
heart, nerving him for the deed that instantly suggested
itself to him. He crept off the porch again, moving
stealthily lest he make the slightest sound that would
warn the watcher at the door, and searched at a corner
of the porch until he found what he was looking for—a
heavy club, a spoke from one of the wheels of a
wagon.</p>
<p>Parsons knew about where to find it, for during the
days that he had sat on the porch nursing his resentment
against Carrington, he had gazed long at the wagon-spoke,
wishing that he might have an opportunity to use
it on Carrington.</p>
<p>He took it, balancing it, testing its weight. And now
a hideous terror seized him, almost paralyzing him. For
though Parsons had robbed many men, he had never
resorted to violence; and for a time he stood with the
club in his hand, unable to move.</p>
<p>He moved at last, though, his face transformed from
the strength of the passion that had returned, and he
carefully stepped on the porch, crossed it, and stood, leaning
forward, peering into the room through the outside
door left open by Carrington. The outside door opened
from the big room adjoining that in which the watcher
sat, and Parsons could see the man, who, with his back
toward the door, was still looking at Marion.</p>
<p>Entering the big room, Parsons saw Marion’s eyes
widen as she looked full at him. He shook his head at
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_280'></SPAN>280</span>
her; her face grew whiter, and she began to talk to the
other man.</p>
<p>Only a second or two elapsed then until Parsons struck.
The man rolled out of his chair without a sound, and
Parsons, leaping over him, trembling, his breath coming
in great gasps, ran to Marion and unbound her hands.</p>
<p>Together they flew outside, where they found the girl’s
horse tethered near a tree, and Parsons’ animal standing
where he had left it.</p>
<p>Mounting, the girl whispered to Parsons. She was
trembling, and her voice broke with a wailing quaver
when she spoke:</p>
<p>“Where shall we go, Elam—where? We—I can’t
go back to the Arrow! Oh, I just can’t! And Carrington
will be back! Oh! isn’t there any <em>way</em> to escape
him?”</p>
<p>“We’ll go to Dawes, girl; that’s where we’ll go!” declared
Parsons, his dread and fear of the big man equaling
that of the girl. “We’ll go to Dawes and tell them
there just what kind of a man Carrington is—and what
he has tried to do with you tonight! There must be some
men in Dawes who will not stand by and see a woman
persecuted!”</p>
<p>And as they rode the river trail toward the town, the
girl, white and silent, riding a little distance ahead of him,
Parsons felt for the first time in his life the tingling thrills
that come of an unselfish deed courageously performed.
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_281'></SPAN>281</span>
And the experience filled him with the spirit to do other
good and unselfish deeds.</p>
<p>They rode fast for a time, until the girl again spoke
of Carrington’s announced intention to return shortly.
Then they rode more cautiously, and it was well they did.
For they had almost reached Dawes when they heard the
whipping tread of a horse’s hoofs on the trail, coming
toward them. They rode well back from the trail, and,
concealed by some heavy brush, saw Carrington riding
toward the big house. He went past them, vanishing into
the shadows of the trees that fringed the trail, and for
a long time the girl and Parsons did not move for fear
Carrington might have slowed his horse and would hear
them. And when they did come out of their concealment
and were again on the Dawes trail, they rode fast, with
the dread of Carrington’s wrath to spur them on.</p>
<hr class='tb' />
<p>It <em>had</em> been Martha’s voice that Parsons had heard
when he had been standing in the timber near the front
of the house. The negro woman was walking back and
forth in the room where her captor had confined her,
vigorously berating the man. She was a dusky thundercloud
of wrath, who rumbled verbal imprecations with
every breath. Her captor—a small man with a coarse
voice, a broken nose, and a scraggy, drooping mustache—stood
in the doorway looking at her fiercely, with obvious
intent to intimidate the indignant Amazon.
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_282'></SPAN>282</span></p>
<p>At the instant Parsons heard her voice she was confronting
the man, her eyes popping with fury.</p>
<p>“You let me out of heah this minute, yo’ white trash!
Yo’ heah! An’ doan’ you think I’s scared of you, ’cause
I ain’t! If you doan’ hop away from that do’, I’s goin’
to mash yo’ haid in wif this yere chair! You git away
now!”</p>
<p>The man grinned. It was a forced grin, and his face
whitened with it, betraying to Martha the fear he felt of
her—which she had suspected from the moment he had
brought her in and the light from the kitchen lamp shone
on his face.</p>
<p>She took a threatening step toward him; a tentative
movement, a testing of his courage. And when she saw
him retreat from her slightly, she lunged at him, raising
the chair she held in her hands.</p>
<p>Possibly the man was reluctant to resort to violence;
he may have had a conviction that the detaining of
Martha was not at all necessary to the success of Carrington’s
plan to subjugate the white girl, or he might have
been merely afraid of Martha. Whatever his thoughts,
the man continued to retreat from the negro woman, and
as she pursued him, her courage grew, and the man’s
vanished in inverse ratio. And as he passed the center
of the kitchen, he wheeled and ran out of the door, Martha
following him.</p>
<p>Outside, the man ran toward the stable. For an instant
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_283'></SPAN>283</span>
Martha stood looking after him. Then, thinking Carrington
was still in the house, and that there was no hope
of her frightening him as she had frightened the little
man who had stood guard over her, she ran to where her
horse stood, clambered into the saddle, and sent the animal
down the big slope toward Mullarky’s cabin, where she
hoped to find Mullarky, to send him to the big house to
rescue the girl from Carrington.</p>
<h2><span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_284'></SPAN>284</span><SPAN name='chXXXII' id='chXXXII'></SPAN>CHAPTER XXXII—TAYLOR BECOMES RILED</h2>
<p>By the time Bud Hemmingway had finished his grotesque
expression of the delight that had seized him,
and had got to his knees and was grinning widely at
Taylor, the horses of the Arrow outfit were running down
the neck of the gorge, their hoofs drumming on the hard
floor of the bottom, awakening echoes that filled the gorge
with an incessant rumbling clatter that might have caused
one to think a regiment of cavalry was advancing at a
gallop.</p>
<p>Bud turned his gaze up the gorge and saw them.</p>
<p>“Ain’t they great!” he yelled at Taylor. The leap in
Bud’s voice betrayed something of the strained tenseness
with which the man had endured his besiegement.</p>
<p>And now that there was an even chance for him, Bud’s
old humorous and carefree impulses were again ascendant.
He got to his feet, grinning, the spirit of battle in his
eyes, and threw a shot at a Keats man, far up on a hillside,
who had left his concealment and was running upward.
At the report of the rifle the man reeled, caught himself,
and continued to clamber upward, another bullet from
Bud’s rifle throwing up a dust spray at his feet.
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_285'></SPAN>285</span></p>
<p>Other figures were now running; the slopes of the hills
in the vicinity were dotted with moving black spots as
the Keats men, also hearing the clattering of hoofs, and
divining that their advantage was gone, made a concerted
break for their horses, which they had hidden in a ravine
beyond the hills.</p>
<p>Taylor did not do any shooting. While Bud was standing
erect among the pile of rocks which had served as a
shelter for him during the afternoon, his rifle growing
hot in his hands, and picturesque curses issued from his
lips, Taylor walked to Spotted Tail and tightened the
saddle cinches. This task did not take him long, but by
the time it was finished the Arrow outfit had dispersed
the Keats men, who were fleeing toward Dawes in
scattered units.</p>
<p>Bothwell, big and grim, rode to where Taylor was
standing, his voice booming as he looked sharply at
Taylor.</p>
<p>“I reckon we got here just in time, boss!” he said.
“They didn’t git you or Bud? No?” at Taylor’s grin.
“Well, we’re wipin’ them out—that’s all! That Keats
bunch can’t run in no raw deal like that on the Arrow—not
while I’m range boss. Law? Bah! Every damned
man that runs with Keats would have stretched hemp
before this if they’d have been any law in the country!
A clean-up, eh—that’s what they tryin’ to pull off. Well,
watch my smoke!”
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_286'></SPAN>286</span></p>
<p>His voice leaping with passion, Bothwell slapped his
horse sharply, and as the animal leaped down the trail
toward Dawes, Bothwell shouted to the other men of the
outfit, who had halted at a little distance back in the
gorge:</p>
<p>“Come a runnin’, you yaps! That ornery bunch can’t
git out of this section without hittin’ the basin trail!”</p>
<p>Bothwell and the others fled down the gorge like a
devastating whirlwind before Taylor could offer a word
of objection.</p>
<p>As a matter of fact, Taylor had paid little attention to
Bothwell’s threats. He knew that the big range boss was
in a bitter rage, and he had been aware of the ill-feeling
that had existed for some time between Keats and his
friends and the men of the Arrow outfit.</p>
<p>But the deserved punishment of Keats was not the
burden his mind carried at this instant. Dominating every
other thought in Taylor’s brain was the obvious, naked
fact that Carrington had struck at him again; that he
had struck underhandedly, as usual; and that he would
continue to fight with that method until he was victorious
or beaten.</p>
<p>And yet Taylor was not so much concerned over the
blow that had been aimed at him as he was of its probable
effect upon Marion Harlan. For of course the girl had
heard of the charge by this time—or she would hear of
it. It would be all the same in the end. And at a blow
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_287'></SPAN>287</span>
the girl’s faith in him would be destroyed—the faith that
he had been nurturing, and upon which he had built his
hopes.</p>
<p>To be sure he had Larry Harlan’s note to show her, to
convince her of his innocence, but he knew that once the
poison of suspicion and doubt got into her heart, she could
never give him that complete confidence of which he had
dreamed. She might, now that Carrington had spread
his poison, conclude that he had forged the note, trusting
in it to disarm the suspicions of herself and of the world.
And if she were to demand why he had not shown her the
note before—when she had first come to the Arrow—he
could not tell her that he had determined never to show
it to her, lest she understand that he knew her mother’s
sordid history. That secret, he had promised himself, she
would never know; nor would she ever know of the
vicious significance of that conversation he had overheard
between Carrington and Parsons on the train coming to
Dawes. He was convinced that if she knew these things
she would never be able to look him in the eyes again.</p>
<p>Therefore, knowing the damage Carrington had
wrought by bringing the charge of murder against him,
Taylor’s rage was now definitely centered upon his enemy.
The pursuit and punishment of Keats was a matter of
secondary consideration in his mind—Bothwell and the
men of the outfit would take care of the man. But Taylor
could no longer fight off the terrible rage that had seized
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_288'></SPAN>288</span>
him over the knowledge of Carrington’s foul methods,
and when he mounted Spotted Tail and urged him down
the trail toward the Arrow ranchhouse, there was a set
to his lips that caused Norton, who had brought his horse
to a halt near him, to look sharply at him and draw a
quick breath.</p>
<p>Not speaking to Norton, nor to Bud—who had also
remained to watch him—Taylor straightened Spotted
Tail to the trail and sent him flying toward the Arrow.
Taylor looked neither to the right nor left, nor did he
speak to Norton and Bud, who rode hard after him.
Down the trail at a point where the neck of the gorge
broadened and merged into the grass level that stretched,
ever widening, to the Arrow, Spotted Tail and his rider
flashed past a big cluster of low hills from which came
flame-streaks and the sharp, cracking reports of rifles, the
yells of men in pain, and the hoarse curses of men in the
grip of the fighting rage.</p>
<p>But Taylor might not have heard the sounds. Certainly
he could not have seen the flame-streaks, unless he
glimpsed them out of the corners of his eyes, for he did
not turn his head as he urged Spotted Tail on, speeding
him over the great green sweep of grass at a pace that
the big horse had never yet been ridden.</p>
<p>Laboring behind him, for they knew that something
momentous impended, Norton and Bud tried their best to
keep up with the flying beast ahead of them. But the
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_289'></SPAN>289</span>
sorrel ridden by Norton, and even the great, rangy, lionhearted
King, could not hold the pace that Spotted Tail
set for them, and they fell slowly back until, when still
several miles from the Arrow, horse and rider vanished
into the dusk ahead of them.</p>
<h2><span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_290'></SPAN>290</span><SPAN name='chXXXIII' id='chXXXIII'></SPAN>CHAPTER XXXIII—RETRIBUTION</h2>
<p>Twice descending the long slope leading to the
basin, Martha’s horse stumbled. The first time
the negro woman lifted him to his feet by jerking sharply
on the reins, but when he stumbled the second time,
Martha was not alert and the horse went to his knees.
Unprepared, Martha was jolted out of the saddle and she
fell awkwardly, landing on her right shoulder with a
force that knocked the breath out of her.</p>
<p>She lay for a short time, gasping, her body racked with
pain, and at last, when she succeeded in getting to her
feet, the horse had strayed some little distance from her
and was quietly browsing the tops of some saccaton.</p>
<p>It was several minutes before Martha caught the animal—several
minutes during which she loosed some picturesque
and original profanity that caused the experienced
range horse to raise his ears inquiringly.</p>
<p>Then, when she caught the horse, she had some trouble
getting into the saddle, though she succeeded after a
while, groaning, and grunting, and whimpering.</p>
<p>But Martha forgot her pains and misery once she was
in the saddle again, and she rode fast, trembling with
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_291'></SPAN>291</span>
eagerness, her sympathies and her concern solely for the
white girl who, she supposed, was a prisoner in the hands
of the ruthless and unprincipled man that Martha,
with her limited vocabulary, had termed many times a
“rapscallion.”</p>
<p>Martha headed her horse straight for the Mullarky
cabin, guided by a faint shaft of light that issued from
one of its windows.</p>
<p>When she reached the cabin she found no one there but
Mrs. Mullarky. Ben, Mrs. Mullarky told Martha, had
gone to Dawes—in fact, he had been in Dawes all day,
she supposed, for he had left home early that morning.</p>
<p>Martha gasped out her news, and Mrs. Mullarky’s face
whitened. While Martha watched her in astonishment,
she tore off the gingham apron that adorned her, threw
it into a corner, and ran into another room, from which
she emerged an instant later carrying a rifle.</p>
<p>The Irishwoman’s face was pale and set, and the light
of a great wrath gleamed in her eyes. Martha, awed by
the woman’s belligerent appearance, could only stand and
blink at her, her mouth gaping with astonishment.</p>
<p>“You go right on to the Arrow!” she commanded
Martha, as she went out of the door; “mebbe you’ll find
somebody there by this time, an’ if you do, send them to
the big house. I’m goin’ over there right this minute to
take that dear little girl away from that big brute!”</p>
<p>She started while Martha was again painfully mounting
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_292'></SPAN>292</span>
her horse, and the two women rode away in opposite
directions—Martha whimpering with pain, and Mrs.
Mullarky silent, grim, with a wild rage gripping her heart.</p>
<hr class='tb' />
<p>Taylor, on Spotted Tail, was approaching the Arrow
ranchhouse at a speed slightly greater than that into which
the big horse had fallen shortly after he had left the gorge.
The spirited animal was just warming to his work, and
he was doing his best when he flashed past the big cattle
corral, going with the noise of rushing wind. In an instant
he was at the long stretch of fence which formed the
ranchyard side of the horse corral, and in another instant
he was sliding to a halt near the edge of the front porch
of the ranchhouse itself. There he drew a deep breath
and looked inquiringly at his master, while the latter slid
off his back, leaped upon the porch, and with a bound
crossed the porch floor, knocking chairs helter-skelter as
he went.</p>
<p>The house was dark, but Taylor ran through the rooms,
calling sharply for Parsons and Marion, but receiving no
reply. When he emerged from the house his face, in the
light of the moon that had climbed above the horizon
some time before, was like that of a man who has just
looked upon the dead face of his best friend.</p>
<p>For Taylor was convinced that he had looked upon
death in the ranchhouse—upon the death of his hopes.
He stood for an instant on the porch, while his passions
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_293'></SPAN>293</span>
raged through him, and then with a laugh of bitter humor
he leaped on Spotted Tail.</p>
<p>Half-way to the Mullarky cabin, with the big horse
running like the wind, Taylor saw a shape looming out
of the darkness ahead of him. He pulled Spotted Tail
down, and loosed one of his pistols, and approached the
shape warily, his muscles stiff and taut and ready for
action.</p>
<p>But it was only Martha who rode up to him. Her fortitude
gone, her pains convulsing her, she wailed to Taylor
the story of the night’s tragic adventure.</p>
<p>“An’ Carrington’s got missy in the big house!” she
concluded. “She fit him powerful hard, but it was no
use—that rapscallion too much fo’ her!”</p>
<p>She shouted the last words at Taylor, for Spotted Tail
had received a jab in the sides with the rowels that hurt
him cruelly, and, angered, he ran like a deer with the
hungry cry of a wolf-pack in his ears.</p>
<p>Like a black streak they rushed by Mrs. Mullarky, who
breathed a fervent, “Oh, thank the Lord, it’s Taylor!”
and before the good woman could catch her breath again,
Spotted Tail and his rider had opened a huge, yawning
space between himself and the laboring horse the woman
rode.</p>
<p>Riding with all his muscles taut as bowstrings, and a
terrible, constricting pressure across his chest—so mighty
were the savage passions that rioted within him—Taylor
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_294'></SPAN>294</span>
reached the foot of the long slope that led to the big
house, and sent Spotted Tail tearing upward with rapid,
desperate leaps.</p>
<hr class='tb' />
<p>When Carrington reached the big house soon after he
had unknowingly passed Marion Harlan and Parsons on
the river trail, he was in a sullen, impatient mood.</p>
<p>For no word concerning Keats’s movements had reached
Dawes, and Carrington was afflicted with a gloomy presentiment
that something had happened to the man—that
he had not been able to locate Taylor, or that he had
found him and Taylor had succeeded in escaping him.</p>
<p>Carrington did not go at once into the house, for captive
though she was, and completely within his power,
he did not want the girl to see him in his present mood.
Lighting a cigar, and chewing it viciously, he walked to
the stable. There, standing in the shadow of the building,
he came upon the guard Martha had routed. He spoke
sharply to the man, asking him why he was not inside
guarding the “nigger.”</p>
<p>The man brazenly announced that Martha had escaped
him, omitting certain details and substituting others from
his imagination.</p>
<p>“If she hadn’t been a woman, now,” added the man
in self-extenuation.</p>
<p>Carrington laughed lowly. “We didn’t need <em>her</em>, anyway,”
he said, and the other laughed with him.
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_295'></SPAN>295</span></p>
<p>The laugh restored Carrington’s good-nature, and he
left the man and went into the front room of the house.
Had he paused on the porch to listen, or had he glanced
toward the big slope that dropped to the basin, he would
not have entered the house just then. And he <em>would</em> have
paused on the porch had it not been that the intensity
of his desires drove him to concentrate all his senses upon
Marion.</p>
<p>He crossed the porch and entered the room, and then
halted, staring downward with startled eyes at the body
of the guard huddled on the floor, a thin stream of blood
staining the carpet beneath his head.</p>
<p>Cursing, Carrington stepped into the other room—the
room in which he had fought with Taylor—the room
in which he had left Marion Harlan bound and sitting on
a chair. The lamp on the shelf was still burning, and in
its light Carrington saw the rope he had used to bind the
girl’s hands.</p>
<p>A bitter rage seized him as he looked at the rope, and
he threw it from him, cursing. In an instant he was outside
the house and had leaped upon his horse. He headed
the animal toward the long slope leading to the Arrow
trail, for he suspected the girl would go straight back
there, despite any conviction she might have of Taylor’s
guilt—for there she would find Parsons, who would give
her what comfort he could. Or she might stop at the
Mullarky cabin. Certainly she would not go to Dawes,
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_296'></SPAN>296</span>
for she must know that <em>he</em> ruled Dawes—Parsons must
have told her that—and that if she went to Dawes, she
would be merely postponing her surrender to him.</p>
<p>He had plenty of time, even if she were in Dawes, he
meditated as he sent his horse over the crest of the slope,
for there were no trains out of the town during the night,
and if she were not at the Arrow or Mullarky’s, he was
sure to catch her later.</p>
<p>He was half-way down the slope, his horse making slow
work of threading its way through the gnarled chaparral
growth, when, looking downward, he saw another horse
leaping up the slope toward him.</p>
<p>In the glare of the moon that was behind Carrington,
he could see horse and rider distinctly, and he jerked his
own horse to a halt, cursing horribly. For the horse that
was leaping toward him like a black demon out of the
night was Spotted Tail. And Spotted Tail’s rider was
Taylor. Carrington could see the man’s face, with the
terrible passion that distorted it, and Carrington wheeled
his horse, making frenzied efforts to escape up the slope.</p>
<p>Carrington was not more than a hundred feet from the
big black horse and its indomitable rider when he wheeled
his own animal, and he had not traveled more than a few
feet when he realized that Spotted Tail was gaining
rapidly.</p>
<p>Cursing again, though his face was ghastly with the
fear that had seized him, Carrington slipped from his
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_297'></SPAN>297</span>
horse, and, running around so that the animal was between
him and Taylor, he drew a heavy pistol from a hip-pocket.
And when the oncoming horse and rider were
within twenty-five or thirty feet of him, Carrington took
deliberate aim and fired.</p>
<p>He grinned vindictively as he saw Taylor reel in the
saddle, and he fired again, and saw Taylor drop to the
ground beside Spotted Tail.</p>
<p>Carrington could not tell whether his second shot had
struck Taylor, and before he could shoot again, Taylor
dove headlong toward a jagged rock that thrust a bulging
shoulder upward. Carrington threw a snapshot at him
as he leaped, but again he could not have told whether the
bullet had gone home.</p>
<p>Keeping the horse between himself and the rock behind
which Taylor had thrown himself, Carrington leaped
behind another that stood near the edge of the chaparral
clump through which he had been riding when he had
seen Taylor coming up the slope. Seeming to sense their
danger, both horses slowly moved off out of the line of
fire and proceeded unconcernedly to browse the clumps
of grass that dotted the side of the slope.</p>
<p>And now began a long, strained silence. Carrington
could see Taylor’s rock, but it was at the edge of the
chaparral, and Taylor might easily slip into the chaparral
and begin a circling movement that would bring him
behind Carrington. The thought brought a damp sweat
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_298'></SPAN>298</span>
out upon Carrington’s forehead, and he began to cast
fearing glances toward the chaparral at his side. He
watched it long, and the longer he watched, the greater
grew his fear. And at last, at the end of half an hour,
the fear grew to a conviction that Taylor was stalking
him in the chaparral. No longer able to endure the suspense,
Carrington left the shelter of his rock and began
to work his way around the edge of the chaparral
clump.</p>
<p>Taylor had felt the heat and the shock of Carrington’s
first bullet, and he knew it had gone into his left arm.
The second bullet had missed him cleanly, and he landed
behind the rock, with all his senses alert, paying no
attention to his wound.</p>
<p>He had recognized Carrington, and with the cold calm
that comes with implacable determination, Taylor instantly
began to take an inventory of the hazards and
the advantages of his position. And after his examination
was concluded, he dropped to his hands and knees
and began to work his way into the chaparral.</p>
<p>He moved cautiously, for he knew that should he disturb
the rank growth he would disclose his whereabouts
to Carrington, should the latter have gained a vantageous
point from where he could watch the thicket for just such
signs of Taylor’s presence.</p>
<p>But Taylor made no such signs; he had not spent the
greater part of his life in the open to be outdone in this
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_299'></SPAN>299</span>
grim strategy by an eastern man. He grinned wickedly
at the thought.</p>
<p>He suspected that Carrington might try the very trick
he himself was trying, and that thought made him wary.</p>
<p>Working his way into the thicket, he at last reached
a point near its center, upon a slight mound surrounded
by stunt oak and quivering aspen. There, concealed and
alert, he waited for Carrington to show himself.</p>
<p>Carrington, though, did not betray his presence in the
thicket. For Carrington was not in the thicket when
Taylor reached its center. Carrington had started into
the thicket, but he had not proceeded very far when he
began to be afflicted with a dread premonition of Taylor’s
presence somewhere in the vicinity.</p>
<p>A clammy sweat broke out on the big man; a panic of
fear seized him, and he began to creep backward, out of
the thicket. And by the time Taylor reached his vantagepoint,
Carrington was crouching at the thicket’s edge,
near the rock where he had been concealed, oppressed
with a conviction that Taylor was working his way
toward him through the thicket.</p>
<p>The big man waited, his nerves taut, his muscles quivering
and cringing at the thought that any instant a
bullet sent at him by Taylor might strike him. For he
knew that Taylor had come for him; he was now convinced
that Marion Harlan <em>had</em> gone to the Arrow, that
she had told Taylor what had happened to her, and that
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_300'></SPAN>300</span>
Taylor had come straight to the big house to punish
him for his misdeeds.</p>
<p>And Carrington had a dread of the sort of punishment
Taylor had dealt him upon a former occasion, and he
wanted no more of it. That was why he had used his
pistol instantly upon recognizing Taylor. He wished,
now, that he had not been so hasty; for he had taken
the initiative, and Taylor would not scruple to imitate
him.</p>
<p>In fact, he was so certain that at that moment Taylor
was creeping upon him from some point with the fury
of murder in his heart, that he got to his feet and, looking
over the top of the rock, searched with wild eyes
for his horse. And when he saw the animal not more
than twenty or thirty feet from him, he could not longer
resist the panic that had seized him. Crouching, he
ran for several yards on his hands and feet and then,
nearing his horse, he stood upright and ran for it.</p>
<p>As he ran he cringed, for he expected a pistol-shot to
greet his appearance at the side of his horse. But no
report came, and he reached the horse, threw himself
into the saddle and raced the animal down the slope.</p>
<p>He was conscious of a pulse of elation, for he thought
he had eluded Taylor, but just as his horse struck the
edge of the big level Carrington looked back, to see
Spotted Tail slipping down the slope with a smooth swiftness
that terrified the big man.
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_301'></SPAN>301</span></p>
<p>He turned then and began to ride as he had never
ridden before. The animal under him was strong, courageous,
and speedy; but Carrington knew he would have
need of all those sterling qualities if he hoped to escape
the iron-hearted horse Taylor bestrode. And so Carrington
leaned forward, trying to lighten the load, slapping
the beast’s neck with the palm of his hand, urging
him with his voice—coaxing him to the best endeavors.
For Carrington knew that somewhere in the vast expanse
of grass land and spread before him Keats and his men
must be. And his only hope lay in reaching them before
the avenger, astride the big horse that was speeding on
his trail like a black thunderbolt, could bring his rider
within pistol-shot distance of him.</p>
<p>But Carrington had not gone more than half a mile
when he realized that the race was to be a short one.
Twice after leaving the edge of the slope Carrington
looked back. The first time Spotted Tail seemed to be
far away; and the next time the big, black animal was
so close that Carrington cried out hoarsely.</p>
<p>And then as Carrington felt the distance being shortened—as
he felt the presence of the black horse almost
at the withers of his own animal—heard the breathing
of the big pursuing beast, he knew that he was not to
be shot.</p>
<p>Before he could swing his own horse to escape, the
big, black horse was beside his own, and one of Taylor’s
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_302'></SPAN>302</span>
arms shot out, the fingers gripping the collar of the big
man’s coat. Then with a vicious pull, swinging the black
horse wide, Taylor jerked Carrington out of the saddle,
so that he fell sidewise into the deep grass—while the
black horse, eager for a run, and not immediately responding
to Taylor’s pull on the reins, ran some feet before he
halted and wheeled.</p>
<p>And when he did finally face toward the spot where
the big man had been jerked from the saddle, it was to
face a succession of flame-streaks that shot from the spot
where Carrington stood trying his best to send into Taylor
a bullet that would put an end to the horrible presentiment
of death that now filled the big man’s heart.</p>
<p>He emptied his pistol and saw the black horse coming
steadily toward him, its rider erect in the saddle, seeming
not to heed the savagely barking weapon. And when
the gun was empty, Carrington threw it from him and
began to run. He ran, and with grim mockery, Taylor
followed him a little distance—followed him until Carrington,
exhausted, his breath coming in great coughing
gasps, could run no farther. And then Taylor
brought the big black to a halt near him, slid easily
out of the saddle, and stepped forward to look into Carrington’s
face, his own stiff and set, his eyes gleaming
with a passion that made the other man groan hopelessly.</p>
<p>“Now, you miserable whelp!” said Taylor.</p>
<p>He lunged forward and the bodies of the two men made
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_303'></SPAN>303</span>
a swaying blot out of which came the sounds of blows,
bitter and savage.</p>
<hr class='tb' />
<p>The little broken-nosed man laughed a little in recollection
of Carrington’s words about Martha. The big
man had let him off easily, and he was properly grateful.
And yet his gratitude did not prevent him from betraying
curiosity; and he watched the front of the house for
Carrington’s reappearance, wondering what he meant to
do with the white girl, now that he had her.</p>
<p>Still watching the front porch, he saw Carrington run
for his horse, leap upon it and sink down the side of the
slope.</p>
<p>The little man then ran to the front of the house and,
concealed among the trees, watched the duel that was
waged in the moonlight. He saw Carrington break from
the thicket, mount his horse and race out into the plain;
he saw Taylor—for he had recognized him—send
Spotted Tail after Carrington. But he did not see the
finish of the race, nor did he see what followed. But
some minutes later he saw a big, black horse tearing
toward him from the spot where the race had ended.
He muttered gutturally and profanely, leaped on his horse
and sent it plunging down the trail toward Dawes, his
face ghastly with fear.</p>
<h2><span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_304'></SPAN>304</span><SPAN name='chXXXIV' id='chXXXIV'></SPAN>CHAPTER XXXIV—THE WILL OF THE MOB</h2>
<p>Parsons had always been an unemotional man. His
own character being immune to the little twinging
impulses of humanness that grow to generous and
unselfish deeds, he had looked with derision upon all
persons who betrayed concern for their fellow-men. And
so Parsons had lived apart from his fellows; he had
watched them from across the gulf of disinterest, where
emotion was foreign.</p>
<p>But tonight Parsons was learning what emotion is.
Not from others, but from himself. Emotions—thousands
of them seethed in his brain and heart. He was
in an advanced state of hysteria when he rode down the
Dawes trail with Marion Harlan. For there was the
huge, implacable, ruthless, and murderous Carrington,
whom he had just passed on the trail, to menace his very
life—and he knew that just as soon as Carrington
returned to the big house and found Marion gone and
the guard dead, he would ride back to Dawes, seeking
vengeance. And Carrington would know it was Parsons
who had robbed him of the girl; for Carrington would
inquire, and would discover that he had ridden into town
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_305'></SPAN>305</span>
with Marion. And when Parsons and Marion rode into
Dawes fear, stark, abject, and naked, was in the man’s
soul.</p>
<p>Dawes was aflame with light as the two passed down
the street; and Parsons left the girl to sit on her horse
in front of a darkened store, while he rode down the
street, peering into other stores, alight and inviting. He
hardly knew what he did want. He knew, however, that
there was little time, for at any minute now Carrington
might come thundering into town on his errand of vengeance;
and whatever Parsons did must be done quickly.</p>
<p>He chose the second store he came to. He thought the
place was a billiard-room until he entered and stood just
inside the door blinking at the lights; and then he knew
it was a saloon, for he saw the bar, the back-bar behind
it, littered with bottles, and many tables scattered around.
More, there were perhaps a hundred men in the place—some
of them drinking; and at the sight of them all,
realizing the mightiness of their number, Parsons raised
his hands aloft and screamed frenziedly:</p>
<p>“Men! There’s been a crime committed tonight! At
the Huggins house! Carrington did it! He abducted
my niece! I want you men to help me! Carrington is
going to kill me! And I want you to protect my niece!”</p>
<p>For an instant after Parsons’ voice died in a breathless
gasp, for he blurted his story, the words coming in a
stream, with hardly a pause between them; there was an
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_306'></SPAN>306</span>
odd, strained silence. Then a man far back in the room
guffawed loudly:</p>
<p>“Plumb loco. Too much forty-rod!”</p>
<p>There was a half-hearted gale of laughter at the man’s
taunt; and then many men were around Parsons, ready
to laugh and jeer. And while some of the men peered at
Parsons, cynically inspecting him for signs of drunkenness,
several others ran to the open door and looked out
into the street.</p>
<p>“There’s somethin’ in his yappin’, boys,” stated a man
who returned from the door; “there’s a gal out here, sure
enough, setting on a hoss, waitin’.”</p>
<p>There was a concerted rush outside to see the girl, and
Parsons was shoved and jostled until he, too, was forced
to go out. And by the time Parsons reached Marion’s
side she had been questioned by the men. And wrathful
curses arose from the lips of men around her.</p>
<p>“Didn’t I know he was that kind of a skunk!” shouted
a man near Parsons. “I knowed it as soon as he beat
Taylor out of the election!”</p>
<p>“I’m for stringin’ the scum up!” yelled another man.
“This town can git along without guys that go around
abductin’ wimmen!”</p>
<p>There were still other lurid and threatening comments.
And many profane epithets rose, burdened with menace,
for Carrington. But the girl, humiliated, weak, and
trembling, did not hear all of them. She saw other men
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_307'></SPAN>307</span>
emerging from doorways—all of them running toward
her to join those who had come out of the saloon. And
then she saw a woman coming toward her, the men making
a pathway for her—a motherly looking woman who,
when she came near the girl, smiled up at her sympathetically
and reached up her hands to help the girl out
of the saddle.</p>
<p>Marion slipped down, and the woman’s arms went
around her. And with many grimly pitying glances from
the men in the crowd about her, which parted to permit
her to pass, she was led into a private dwelling at a little
distance down the street, into a cozy room where there
were signs of decency and refinement. The woman placed
the girl in a chair, and stood beside her, smoothing her
hair and talking to her in low, comforting tones; while
outside a clamor rose and a confused mutter of many
voices out of which she began to catch sentences, such as:</p>
<p>“Let’s fan it to the big house an’ git him!”</p>
<p>“There’s too many crooks in this town—let’s run
’em out!”</p>
<p>“What in hell did he come here for?”</p>
<p>“Judge Littlefield is just as bad—he cheated Taylor out
of the election!” “That’s right,” answered another
voice. “Taylor’s our man!”</p>
<p>“They are all wrought up over this, my dear,” said
the woman. “For a long time there has been an undercurrent
of dissatisfaction over the way they cheated
Quinton Taylor out of the mayoralty. I don’t think it
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_308'></SPAN>308</span>
was a bit fair. And,” she continued, “there are other
things. They have found out that Carrington is behind
a scheme to steal the water rights from the town—something
he did to the board of directors of the irrigation
company, I believe. And he has had his councilmen
pass laws to widen some streets and open new ones.
And the well-informed call it a steal, too. Mr. Norton
has stirred up a lot of sentiment against Carrington and
Danforth, and all the rest of them. Secretly, that is.
And there is that murder charge against Quinton Taylor,”
went on the woman. “That is preposterous!
Taylor was the best friend Larry Harlan ever had!”</p>
<p>But the girl turned her head, and her lips quivered,
for the mention of Taylor had brought back to her the
poignant sense of loss that she had felt when she had
learned of the charge against Taylor. She bowed her
head and wept silently, the woman trying again to comfort
her, while outside the noise and tumult grew in volume—threatening
violence.</p>
<p>By the time Marion Harlan had dropped into the chair
in the room of the house into which the woman had
taken her, the crowd that had collected in the street was
packed and jammed against the buildings on each side
of it.</p>
<p>Those who had come late demanded to be told what
had happened; and some men lifted Parsons to the back
of his horse, and with their hands on his legs, bracing
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_309'></SPAN>309</span>
him, Parsons repeated the story of what had occurred.
More—yielding to the frenzy that had now taken possession
of his senses, he told of Carrington’s plotting
against the town; of the man’s determination to loot and
steal everything he could get his hands on. He told
them of his own culpability; he assured them he had
been as guilty as Carrington and Danforth—who was
a mere tool, though as unscrupulous as Carrington. He
gave them an account of Carrington’s stewardship of
his own money; and he related the story of Carrington’s
friendship with the governor, connecting Carrington’s
trip to the capital with the stealing of the election from
Taylor.</p>
<p>It is the psychology of the mob that it responds in
some measure to the frenzy of the man who agitates it.
So it was with the great crowd that now swarmed the
wide street of Dawes. Partisan feeling—all differences
of opinion that in other times would have barred concerted
action—was swept away by the fervent appeal
Parsons made, and by his complete and scathing revelation
of the iniquitous scheme to rob the town.</p>
<p>A great sigh arose as Parsons finished and was drawn
down, his hat off, his hair ruffled, his eyes gleaming with
the strength of the terrible frenzy he was laboring under.
The crowd muttered; voices rose sharply; there was an
impatient movement; a concerted stiffening of bodies
and a long pause, as of preparation.
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_310'></SPAN>310</span></p>
<p>Aroused, seething with passion, with a vindictive desire
for action, swift and ruthless, the crowd waited—waited
for a leader. And while the pause and the mutterings
continued, the leader came.</p>
<p>It was the big, grim-faced Bothwell, at the head of
the Arrow outfit. With his horse in a dead run, the
other horses of the outfit crowding him close, Bothwell
brought his horse to a sliding halt at the edge of the
crowd.</p>
<p>Bothwell’s eyes were ablaze with the light of battle;
and he stood in his stirrups, looming high above the heads
of the men around him, and shouted:</p>
<p>“Where’s my boss—Squint Taylor?” And before
anyone could answer—“Where’s that damned coyote
Carrington? Where’s Danforth? What’s wrong here?”</p>
<p>It was Parsons who answered him. Parsons, again
clambering into the saddle from which he had spoken,
now shrieking shrilly:</p>
<p>“It’s Carrington’s work! He abducted Marion Harlan,
my niece. He’s a scoundrel and a thief, and he is
trying to ruin this town!”</p>
<p>There was a short silence as Parsons slid again to the
ground, and then the man growled profanely:</p>
<p>“Let’s run the whole bunch out of town! Start somethin’,
Bothwell!”</p>
<p>Bothwell laughed, a booming bellow of grim mirth
that stirred the crowd to movement. “We’ve been startin’
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_311'></SPAN>311</span>
somethin’! This outfit is out for a clean-up! There’s
been too much sneakin’ an’ murderin’; an’ too many fake
warrants flyin’ around, with a bunch like them Keats guys
sent out to kill innocent men. Damn their hides! Let’s
get ’em—all of ’em!”</p>
<p>He flung his horse around and leaped it between the
other horses of the Arrow outfit, sending it straight to
the doors of the city hall. Closing in behind him, the
other members of the Arrow outfit followed; and behind
them the crowd, now able to center its passion upon something
definite, rushed forward—a yelling, muttering, turbulent
mass of men intent to destroy the things which
the common conscience loathes.</p>
<p>It seemed a lashing sea of retribution to Danforth and
Judge Littlefield, who were in the mayor’s office, a little
group of their political adherents around them. At the
first sign of a disturbance, Danforth had attempted to
gather his official forces with the intention of preserving
order. But only these few had responded, and they,
white-faced, feeling their utter impotence, were standing
in the room, terror-stricken, when Bothwell and the men
of the Arrow outfit, with the crowd yelling behind them,
entered the door of the office.</p>
<hr class='tb' />
<p>The little, broken-nosed man had done well to leave
the vicinity of the big house before Taylor arrived there.
For when Taylor emerged from the front room, in which
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_312'></SPAN>312</span>
the light still burned, his soul was still in the grip of a
lust to slay.</p>
<p>He was breathing fast when he emerged from the
house, for what he saw there had puzzled him—the
guard lying on the floor and Marion gone—and he stood
for an instant on the porch, scanning the clearing and
the woods around the house with blazing eyes, his guns
in hand.</p>
<p>The silence around the house was deep and solemn
now, and over Taylor stole a conviction that Carrington
had sent Marion to Dawes in charge of some of his
men; having divined that he would come for her. But
Taylor did not act upon the conviction instantly. He ran
to the stable, stormed through it—and the other buildings
in the cluster around the ranchhouse; and finding
no trace of men or girl, he at last leaped on Spotted Tail
and sent him thundering over the trail toward Dawes.</p>
<p>When he arrived in town a swaying, shouting, shooting
mob jammed the streets. He brought his horse to a
halt on the edge of the crowd that packed the street in
front of the city hall, and demanded to know what was
wrong.</p>
<p>The man shouted at him:</p>
<p>“Hell’s to pay! Carrington abducted Marion Harlan,
an’ that little guy—Parsons—rescued her. An’ Parsons
made a speech, tellin’ folks what Carrington an’
Danforth an’ all the rest of the sneakin’ coyotes have
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_313'></SPAN>313</span>
done, an’ we’re runnin’ the scum out of town!” And
then, before Taylor could ask about the girl, the man
raised his voice to a shrill yell:</p>
<p>“It’s Squint Taylor, boys! Squint Taylor! Stand
back an’ let ol’ Squint take a hand in this here deal!”</p>
<p>There was a wild, concerted screech of joy. It rose
like the shrieking of a gale; it broke against the buildings
that fringed the street; it echoed and reechoed with
terrific resonance back and forth over the heads of the
men in the crowd. It penetrated into the cozy room of
a private dwelling, where sat a girl who started at the
sound and sat erect, her face paling, her eyes, glowing
with a light that made the motherly looking woman say
to her, softly:</p>
<p>“Ah, then you <em>do</em> believe in him, my dear!”</p>
<hr class='tb' />
<p>It was when the noise and the tumult had subsided that
Taylor went to her. For he had been told where he
might find her by men who smiled sympathetically at his
back as he walked down the street toward the private
dwelling.</p>
<p>She was at the door as soon as he, for she had been
watching from one of the front windows, and had seen
him come toward the house.</p>
<p>And when the motherly looking woman saw them in
each other’s arms, the moon and the light from within
the house revealing them to her, and to the men in the
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_314'></SPAN>314</span>
crowd who watched from the street, she smiled gently.
What the two said to each other will never be known, for
their words were drowned in the cheer that rose from
hoarse-voiced men who knew that words are sometimes
futile and unnecessary.</p>
<h2><span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_315'></SPAN>315</span><SPAN name='chXXXV' id='chXXXV'></SPAN>CHAPTER XXXV—TRIUMPH AT LAST</h2>
<p>A month later, Taylor walked to the front door
of the Arrow ranchhouse and stood on the threshold
looking out over the great sweep of green-brown plain
that reached eastward to Dawes.</p>
<p>A change had come over Taylor. His eyes had a
gentler light in them—as though they had seen things
that had taken the edge off his sterner side; and there
was an atmosphere about him that created the impression
that his thoughts were at this moment far from violence.</p>
<p>“Mr. Taylor!” said a voice behind him—from the
front room. There had been an undoubted accent on
the “Mr.” And the voice was one that Taylor knew
well; the sound of it deepened the gentle gleam in his
eyes.</p>
<p>“Mrs. Taylor,” he answered, imparting to the “Mrs.”
exactly the emphasis the voice had placed on the other.</p>
<p>There was a laugh behind him, and then the voice
again, slightly reproachful: “Oh, that sounds so <em>awfully</em>
formal, Squint!”</p>
<p>“Well,” he said, “you started it.”</p>
<p>“I like ‘Squint’ better,” said the voice.
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_316'></SPAN>316</span></p>
<p>“I’m hoping you keep on liking Squint all the days
of your life,” he returned.</p>
<p>“I was speaking of names,” declared the voice.</p>
<p>“Doan’ yo’ let her fool yo’, Mr. Squint!” came another
voice, “fo’ she think a heap mo’ of you than she think
of yo’ name!”</p>
<p>“Martha!” said the first voice in laughing reproof,
“I vow I shall send you away some day!”</p>
<p>And then there was a clumping step on the floor, and
Martha’s voice reached the door as she went out of the
house through the kitchen:</p>
<p>“I’s goin’ to the bunkhouse to expostulate wif that
lazy Bud Hemmingway. He tole me this mawnin’ he’s
gwine feed them hawgs—an’ he ain’t done it!”</p>
<p>And then Mrs. Taylor appeared at the door and placed
an arm around her husband’s neck, drawing his head over
to her and kissing him.</p>
<p>She looked much like the Marion Harlan who had left
the Arrow on a night about a month before, though there
was a more eloquent light in her eyes, and a tenderness
had come over her that made her whole being radiate.</p>
<p>“Don’t you think you had better get ready to go to
Dawes, dear?” she suggested.</p>
<p>“I like that better than ‘Squint’ even,” he grinned.</p>
<p>For a long time they stood in the doorway very close
together. And then Mrs. Taylor looked up with grave
eyes at her husband.
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_317'></SPAN>317</span></p>
<p>“Won’t you please let me look at <em>all</em> of father’s note
to you, Squint?” she asked.</p>
<p>“That can’t be done,” he grinned at her. “For,” he
added, “that day after I let you read part of it I burnt
it. It’s gone—like a lot of other things that are not
needed now!”</p>
<p>“But what did it say—that part that you wouldn’t
let me read?” she insisted.</p>
<p>“It said,” he quoted, “‘I want you to marry her,
Squint.’ And I have done so—haven’t I?”</p>
<p>“Was that <em>all</em>?” she persisted.</p>
<p>“I’d call that plenty!” he laughed.</p>
<p>“Well,” she sighed, “I suppose that will have to be
sufficient. But get ready, dear; they will be waiting for
you!” She left him and went into a room, from where
she called back to him: “It won’t take me long to
dress.” And then, after an interval: “Where do you
suppose Uncle Elam went?”</p>
<p>He scowled out of the doorway; then turned and
smiled. “He didn’t say. And he lost no time saying
farewell to Dawes, once he got his hands on the money
Carrington left.” Taylor’s smile became a laugh, low and
full of amusement.</p>
<p>Shortly Mrs. Taylor appeared, attired in a neat riding-habit,
and Taylor donned coat and hat, and they went arm
in arm to the corral gate, where their horses were standing,
having been roped, saddled, and bridled by the
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_318'></SPAN>318</span>
“lazy” Bud Hemmingway, who stood outside the bunkhouse
grinning at them.</p>
<p>“Well, good luck!” Bud called after them as they
rode toward Dawes.</p>
<p>Lingering much on the way, and stopping at the Mullarky
cabin, they finally reached the edge of town and
were met by Neil Norton, who grinned widely when he
greeted them.</p>
<p>Norton waved a hand at Dawes. As in another time,
Dawes was arrayed in holiday attire, swathed in a riot
of color—starry bunting, flags, and streamers, with hundreds
of Japanese lanterns suspended festoonlike across
the streets. And now, as Taylor and the blushing, moist-eyed
woman at his side rode down the street, a band on
a platform near the station burst into music, its brazen-tongued
instruments drowning the sound of cheering.</p>
<p>“We got that from Lazette,” grinned Norton. “We
had to have <em>some</em> noise! As I told you the other day,”
he went on, speaking loudly, so that Taylor could hear
him above the tumult, “it is all fixed up. Judge Littlefield
stayed on the job here, because he promised to be
good. He hadn’t really done anything, you know. And
after we made Danforth and the five councilmen resign
that night, and saw them aboard the east-bound the next
morning, we made Littlefield wire the governor about
what had happened. Littlefield went to the capital
shortly afterward and told the governor some things that
<span class='pagenum pncolor'><SPAN name='page_319'></SPAN>319</span>
astonished him. And the governor appointed you to fill
Danforth’s unexpired term. But, of course, that was
only an easy way for the governor to surrender. So
everything is lovely.”</p>
<p>Norton paused, out of breath.</p>
<p>And Taylor smiled at his wife. “Yes,” he said, as
he took her arm, “this is a mighty good little old world—if
you treat it right.”</p>
<p>“And if you stay faithful,” added the moist-eyed
woman.</p>
<p>“And if you fall in love,” supplemented Taylor.</p>
<p>“And when the people of a town want to honor you,”
added Norton significantly.</p>
<p>And then, arm in arm, followed by Norton, Taylor and
his wife rode forward, their horses close together, toward
the great crowd of people that jammed the street around
the band-stand, their voices now raised above the music
that blared forth from the brazen instruments.</p>
<p> <br/>
 <br/>
 <br/></p>
<p><span style='font-size:1.2em;font-weight:bold;'>EDGAR RICE BURROUGH’S NOVELS</span></p>
<p>May be had wherever books are sold. Ask for Grosset & Dunlap’s list.</p>
<p>TARZAN THE UNTAMED</p>
<p style='margin-left: 2em;margin-right: 2em;'>
Tells of Tarzan’s return to the life of the ape-man in
his search for vengeance on those who took from him his
wife and home.</p>
<p>JUNGLE TALES OF TARZAN</p>
<p style='margin-left: 2em;margin-right: 2em;'>
Records the many wonderful exploits by which Tarzan
proves his right to ape kingship.</p>
<p>A PRINCESS OF MARS</p>
<p style='margin-left: 2em;margin-right: 2em;'>
Forty-three million miles from the earth—a succession
of the weirdest and most astounding adventures in fiction.
John Carter, American, finds himself on the planet Mars,
battling for a beautiful woman, with the Green Men of
Mars, terrible creatures fifteen feet high, mounted on
horses like dragons.</p>
<p>THE GODS OF MARS</p>
<p style='margin-left: 2em;margin-right: 2em;'>
Continuing John Carter’s adventures on the Planet Mars,
in which he does battle against the ferocious “plant men,”
creatures whose mighty tails swished their victims to instant
death, and defies Issus, the terrible Goddess of Death,
whom all Mars worships and reveres.</p>
<p>THE WARLORD OF MARS</p>
<p style='margin-left: 2em;margin-right: 2em;'>
Old acquaintances, made in the two other stories, reappear,
Tars Tarkas, Tardos Mors and others. There is a
happy ending to the story in the union of the Warlord,
the title conferred upon John Carter, with Dejah Thoris.</p>
<p>THUVIA, MAID OF MARS</p>
<p style='margin-left: 2em;margin-right: 2em;'>
The fourth volume of the series. The story centers
around the adventures of Carthoris, the son of John Carter
and Thuvia, daughter of a Martian Emperor.</p>
<p>GROSSET & DUNLAP, Publishers, NEW YORK.</p>
<p> <br/>
 <br/>
 <br/></p>
<p><span style='font-size:1.2em;font-weight:bold;'>ZANE GREY’S NOVELS</span></p>
<p>May be had wherever books are sold. Ask for Grosset & Dunlap’s list.</p>
<p> THE MAN OF THE FOREST<br/>
THE DESERT OF WHEAT<br/>
THE U. P. TRAIL<br/>
WILDFIRE<br/>
THE BORDER LEGION<br/>
THE RAINBOW TRAIL<br/>
THE HERITAGE OF THE DESERT<br/>
RIDERS OF THE PURPLE SAGE<br/>
THE LIGHT OF WESTERN STARS<br/>
THE LAST OF THE PLAINSMEN<br/>
THE LONE STAR RANGER<br/>
DESERT GOLD<br/>
BETTY ZANE<br/></p>
<p>LAST OF THE GREAT SCOUTS</p>
<p style='margin-left: 2em;margin-right: 2em;'>
The life story of “Buffalo Bill” by his sister Helen Cody
Wetmore, with Foreword and conclusion by Zane Grey.</p>
<p>ZANE GREY’S BOOKS FOR BOYS</p>
<p> KEN WARD IN THE JUNGLE<br/>
THE YOUNG LION HUNTER<br/>
THE YOUNG FORESTER<br/>
THE YOUNG PITCHER<br/>
THE SHORT STOP<br/>
THE RED-HEADED OUTFIELD AND OTHER BASEBALL STORIES<br/></p>
<p>Grosset & Dunlap, Publishers, New York</p>
<p> <br/>
 <br/>
 <br/></p>
<p><span style='font-size:1.2em;font-weight:bold;'>JAMES OLIVER CURWOOD’S STORIES OF ADVENTURE</span></p>
<p>May be had wherever books are sold. Ask for Grosset & Dunlap’s list.</p>
<p>THE RIVER’S END</p>
<p style='margin-left: 2em;margin-right: 2em;'>
A story of the Royal Mounted Police.</p>
<p>THE GOLDEN SNARE</p>
<p style='margin-left: 2em;margin-right: 2em;'>
Thrilling adventures in the Far Northland.</p>
<p>NOMADS OF THE NORTH</p>
<p style='margin-left: 2em;margin-right: 2em;'>
The story of a bear-cub and a dog.</p>
<p>KAZAN</p>
<p style='margin-left: 2em;margin-right: 2em;'>
The tale of a “quarter-strain wolf and three-quarters husky” torn
between the call of the human and his wild mate.</p>
<p>BAREE, SON OF KAZAN</p>
<p style='margin-left: 2em;margin-right: 2em;'>
The story of the son of the blind Grey Wolf and the gallant part
he played in the lives of a man and a woman.</p>
<p>THE COURAGE OF CAPTAIN PLUM</p>
<p style='margin-left: 2em;margin-right: 2em;'>
The story of the King of Beaver Island, a Mormon colony, and his
battle with Captain Plum.</p>
<p>THE DANGER TRAIL</p>
<p style='margin-left: 2em;margin-right: 2em;'>
A tale of love, Indian vengeance, and a mystery of the North.</p>
<p>THE HUNTED WOMAN</p>
<p style='margin-left: 2em;margin-right: 2em;'>
A tale of a great fight in the “valley of gold” for a woman.</p>
<p>THE FLOWER OF THE NORTH</p>
<p style='margin-left: 2em;margin-right: 2em;'>
The story of Fort o’ God, where the wild flavor of the wilderness
is blended with the courtly atmosphere of France.</p>
<p>THE GRIZZLY KING</p>
<p style='margin-left: 2em;margin-right: 2em;'>
The story of Thor, the big grizzly.</p>
<p>ISOBEL</p>
<p style='margin-left: 2em;margin-right: 2em;'>
A love story of the Far North.</p>
<p>THE WOLF HUNTERS</p>
<p style='margin-left: 2em;margin-right: 2em;'>
A thrilling tale of adventure in the Canadian wilderness.</p>
<p>THE GOLD HUNTERS</p>
<p style='margin-left: 2em;margin-right: 2em;'>
The story of adventure in the Hudson Bay wilds.</p>
<p>THE COURAGE OF MARGE O’DOONE</p>
<p style='margin-left: 2em;margin-right: 2em;'>
Filled with exciting incidents in the land of strong men and women.</p>
<p>BACK TO GOD’S COUNTRY</p>
<p style='margin-left: 2em;margin-right: 2em;'>
A thrilling story of the Far North. The great Photoplay was made
from this book.</p>
<p>Grosset & Dunlap, Publishers, New York</p>
<p> <br/>
 <br/>
 <br/></p>
<p><span style='font-size:1.2em;font-weight:bold;'>FLORENCE L. BARCLAY’S NOVELS</span></p>
<p>May be had wherever books are sold. Ask for Grosset & Dunlap’s list.</p>
<p>THE WHITE LADIES OF WORCESTER</p>
<p style='margin-left: 2em;margin-right: 2em;'>
A novel of the 12th Century. The heroine, believing she
had lost her lover, enters a convent. He returns, and interesting
developments follow.</p>
<p>THE UPAS TREE</p>
<p style='margin-left: 2em;margin-right: 2em;'>
A love story of rare charm. It deals with a successful
author and his wife.</p>
<p>THROUGH THE POSTERN GATE</p>
<p style='margin-left: 2em;margin-right: 2em;'>
The story of a seven day courtship, in which the discrepancy
in ages vanished into insignificance before the
convincing demonstration of abiding love.</p>
<p>THE ROSARY</p>
<p style='margin-left: 2em;margin-right: 2em;'>
The story of a young artist who is reputed to love beauty
above all else in the world, but who, when blinded through
an accident, gains life’s greatest happiness. A rare story
of the great passion of two real people superbly capable of
love, its sacrifices and its exceeding reward.</p>
<p>THE MISTRESS OF SHENSTONE</p>
<p style='margin-left: 2em;margin-right: 2em;'>
The lovely young Lady Ingleby, recently widowed by the
death of a husband who never understood her, meets a fine,
clean young chap who is ignorant of her title and they fall
deeply in love with each other. When he learns her real
identity a situation of singular power is developed.</p>
<p>THE BROKEN HALO</p>
<p style='margin-left: 2em;margin-right: 2em;'>
The story of a young man whose religious belief was
shattered in childhood and restored to him by the little
white lady, many years older than himself, to whom he is
passionately devoted.</p>
<p>THE FOLLOWING OF THE STAR</p>
<p style='margin-left: 2em;margin-right: 2em;'>
The story of a young missionary, who, about to start for
Africa, marries wealthy Diana Rivers, in order to help her
fulfill the conditions of her uncle’s will, and how they finally
come to love each other and are reunited after experiences
that soften and purify.</p>
<p>Grosset & Dunlap, Publishers, New York</p>
<p> <br/>
 <br/>
 <br/></p>
<p><span style='font-size:1.2em;font-weight:bold;'>ETHEL M. DELL’S NOVELS</span></p>
<p>May be had wherever books are sold. Ask for Grosset & Dunlap’s list.</p>
<p>THE LAMP IN THE DESERT</p>
<p style='margin-left: 2em;margin-right: 2em;'>
The scene of this splendid story is laid in India and
tells of the lamp of love that continues to shine through
all sorts of tribulations to final happiness.</p>
<p>GREATHEART</p>
<p style='margin-left: 2em;margin-right: 2em;'>
The story of a cripple whose deformed body conceals
a noble soul.</p>
<p>THE HUNDREDTH CHANCE</p>
<p style='margin-left: 2em;margin-right: 2em;'>
A hero who worked to win even when there was only
“a hundredth chance.”</p>
<p>THE SWINDLER</p>
<p style='margin-left: 2em;margin-right: 2em;'>
The story of a “bad man’s” soul revealed by a
woman’s faith.</p>
<p>THE TIDAL WAVE</p>
<p style='margin-left: 2em;margin-right: 2em;'>
Tales of love and of women who learned to know the
true from the false.</p>
<p>THE SAFETY CURTAIN</p>
<p style='margin-left: 2em;margin-right: 2em;'>
A very vivid love story of India. The volume also
contains four other long stories of equal interest.</p>
<p>Grosset & Dunlap, Publishers, New York</p>
<p> <br/>
 <br/>
 <br/></p>
<p><span style='font-size:1.2em;font-weight:bold;'>“STORM COUNTRY” BOOKS BY GRACE MILLER WHITE</span></p>
<p>May be had wherever books are sold. Ask for Grosset & Dunlap’s list.</p>
<p>JUDY OF ROGUES’ HARBOR</p>
<p style='margin-left: 2em;margin-right: 2em;'>
Judy’s untutored ideas of God, her love of wild things,
her faith in life are quite as inspiring as those of Tess.
Her faith and sincerity catch at your heart strings. This
book has all of the mystery and tense action of the other
Storm Country books.</p>
<p>TESS OF THE STORM COUNTRY</p>
<p style='margin-left: 2em;margin-right: 2em;'>
It was as Tess, beautiful, wild, impetuous, that Mary
Pickford made her reputation as a motion picture actress.
How love acts upon a temperament such as hers—a temperament
that makes a woman an angel or an outcast, according
to the character of the man she loves—is the
theme of the story.</p>
<p>THE SECRET OF THE STORM COUNTRY</p>
<p style='margin-left: 2em;margin-right: 2em;'>
The sequel to “Tess of the Storm Country,” with the
same wild background, with its half-gypsy life of the squatters—tempestuous,
passionate, brooding. Tess learns the
“secret” of her birth and finds happiness and love through
her boundless faith in life.</p>
<p>FROM THE VALLEY OF THE MISSING</p>
<p style='margin-left: 2em;margin-right: 2em;'>
A haunting story with its scene laid near the country
familiar to readers of “Tess of the Storm Country.”</p>
<p>ROSE O’ PARADISE</p>
<p style='margin-left: 2em;margin-right: 2em;'>
“Jinny” Singleton, wild, lovely, lonely, but with a passionate
yearning for music, grows up in the house of Lafe
Grandoken, a crippled cobbler of the Storm Country. Her
romance is full of power and glory and tenderness.</p>
<p><em>Ask for Complete free list of G. & D. Popular Copyrighted Fiction</em></p>
<p>Grosset & Dunlap, Publishers, New York</p>
<p> <br/>
 <br/>
 <br/></p>
<p><span style='font-size:1.2em;font-weight:bold;'>BOOTH TARKINGTON’S NOVELS</span></p>
<p>May be had wherever books are sold. Ask for Grosset & Dunlap’s list.</p>
<p>SEVENTEEN. Illustrated by Arthur William Brown.</p>
<p style='margin-left: 2em;margin-right: 2em;'>
No one but the creator of Penrod could have portrayed
the immortal young people of this story. Its humor is irresistible
and reminiscent of the time when the reader was
Seventeen.</p>
<p>PENROD. Illustrated by Gordon Grant.</p>
<p style='margin-left: 2em;margin-right: 2em;'>
This is a picture of a boy’s heart, full of the lovable, humorous,
tragic things which are locked secrets to most older
folks. It is a finished, exquisite work.</p>
<p>PENROD AND SAM. Illustrated by Worth Brehm.</p>
<p style='margin-left: 2em;margin-right: 2em;'>
Like “Penrod” and “Seventeen,” this book contains
some remarkable phases of real boyhood and some of the best
stories of juvenile prankishness that have ever been written.</p>
<p>THE TURMOIL. Illustrated by C. E. Chambers.</p>
<p style='margin-left: 2em;margin-right: 2em;'>
Bibbs Sheridan is a dreamy, imaginative youth, who revolts
against his father’s plans for him to be a servitor of
big business. The love of a fine girl turns Bibbs’ life from
failure to success.</p>
<p>THE GENTLEMAN FROM INDIANA. Frontispiece.</p>
<p style='margin-left: 2em;margin-right: 2em;'>
A story of love and politics,—more especially a picture of
a country editor’s life in Indiana, but the charm of the book
lies in the love interest.</p>
<p>THE FLIRT. Illustrated by Clarence F. Underwood.</p>
<p style='margin-left: 2em;margin-right: 2em;'>
The “Flirt,” the younger of two sisters, breaks one girl’s
engagement, drives one man to suicide, causes the murder
of another, leads another to lose his fortune, and in the end
marries a stupid and unpromising suitor, leaving the really
worthy one to marry her sister.</p>
<p><em>Ask for Complete free list of G. & D. Popular Copyrighted Fiction</em></p>
<p>Grosset & Dunlap, Publishers, New York</p>
<p> <br/>
 <br/>
 <br/></p>
<p><span style='font-size:1.2em;font-weight:bold;'>KATHLEEN NORRIS’ STORIES</span></p>
<p>May be had wherever books are sold. Ask for Grosset & Dunlap’s list</p>
<p>SISTERS. Frontispiece by Frank Street.</p>
<p style='margin-left: 2em;margin-right: 2em;'>
The California Redwoods furnish the background for this
beautiful story of sisterly devotion and sacrifice.</p>
<p>POOR, DEAR, MARGARET KIRBY.</p>
<p style='margin-left: 2em;margin-right: 2em;'>
Frontispiece by George Gibbs.</p>
<p style='margin-left: 2em;margin-right: 2em;'>
A collection of delightful stories, including “Bridging the
Years” and “The Tide-Marsh.” This story is now shown in
moving pictures.</p>
<p>JOSSELYN’S WIFE. Frontispiece by C. Allan Gilbert.</p>
<p style='margin-left: 2em;margin-right: 2em;'>
The story of a beautiful woman who fought a bitter fight for
happiness and love.</p>
<p>MARTIE, THE UNCONQUERED.</p>
<p style='margin-left: 2em;margin-right: 2em;'>
Illustrated by Charles E. Chambers.</p>
<p style='margin-left: 2em;margin-right: 2em;'>
The triumph of a dauntless spirit over adverse conditions.</p>
<p>THE HEART OF RACHAEL.</p>
<p style='margin-left: 2em;margin-right: 2em;'>
Frontispiece by Charles E. Chambers.</p>
<p style='margin-left: 2em;margin-right: 2em;'>
An interesting story of divorce and the problems that come
with a second marriage.</p>
<p>THE STORY OF JULIA PAGE.</p>
<p style='margin-left: 2em;margin-right: 2em;'>
Frontispiece by C. Allan Gilbert.</p>
<p style='margin-left: 2em;margin-right: 2em;'>
A sympathetic portrayal of the quest of a normal girl, obscure
and lonely, for the happiness of life.</p>
<p>SATURDAY’S CHILD. Frontispiece by F. Graham Cootes.</p>
<p style='margin-left: 2em;margin-right: 2em;'>
Can a girl, born in rather sordid conditions, lift herself through
sheer determination to the better things for which her soul
hungered?</p>
<p>MOTHER. Illustrated by F. C. Yohn.</p>
<p style='margin-left: 2em;margin-right: 2em;'>
A story of the big mother heart that beats in the background
of every girl’s life, and some dreams which came true.</p>
<p><em>Ask for Complete free list of G. & D. Popular Copyrighted Fiction</em></p>
<p>Grosset & Dunlap, Publishers, New York</p>
<SPAN name="endofbook"></SPAN>
<div style="break-after:column;"></div><br />